US20030100518A1 - 13-Methyl erythromycin derivatives - Google Patents
13-Methyl erythromycin derivatives Download PDFInfo
- Publication number
- US20030100518A1 US20030100518A1 US09/577,901 US57790100A US2003100518A1 US 20030100518 A1 US20030100518 A1 US 20030100518A1 US 57790100 A US57790100 A US 57790100A US 2003100518 A1 US2003100518 A1 US 2003100518A1
- Authority
- US
- United States
- Prior art keywords
- alkyl
- independently selected
- formula
- substituents
- compounds
- Prior art date
- Legal status (The legal status is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the status listed.)
- Abandoned
Links
- 150000001875 compounds Chemical class 0.000 claims abstract description 397
- 238000000034 method Methods 0.000 claims abstract description 76
- 150000003839 salts Chemical class 0.000 claims abstract description 42
- 208000015181 infectious disease Diseases 0.000 claims abstract description 41
- 239000008194 pharmaceutical composition Substances 0.000 claims abstract description 25
- 239000000651 prodrug Substances 0.000 claims abstract description 24
- 229940002612 prodrug Drugs 0.000 claims abstract description 24
- 238000011282 treatment Methods 0.000 claims abstract description 23
- 239000012453 solvate Substances 0.000 claims abstract description 11
- -1 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl Chemical group 0.000 claims description 132
- 125000001424 substituent group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 93
- 229910052799 carbon Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 38
- OKTJSMMVPCPJKN-UHFFFAOYSA-N Carbon Chemical compound [C] OKTJSMMVPCPJKN-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 claims description 34
- 229910052739 hydrogen Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 33
- 125000000217 alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 29
- 125000003342 alkenyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 28
- 125000000304 alkynyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 28
- 229910052786 argon Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 28
- 125000004429 atom Chemical group 0.000 claims description 27
- 125000002887 hydroxy group Chemical group [H]O* 0.000 claims description 25
- 125000000623 heterocyclic group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 20
- 229910052731 fluorine Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 19
- IJGRMHOSHXDMSA-UHFFFAOYSA-N nitrogen Substances N#N IJGRMHOSHXDMSA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 claims description 18
- 125000001997 phenyl group Chemical group [H]C1=C([H])C([H])=C(*)C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 claims description 16
- 241000251468 Actinopterygii Species 0.000 claims description 15
- 241000124008 Mammalia Species 0.000 claims description 15
- 125000004400 (C1-C12) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 14
- 125000004122 cyclic group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 14
- 229910052757 nitrogen Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 14
- 125000004549 quinolin-4-yl group Chemical group N1=CC=C(C2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 claims description 14
- 125000000008 (C1-C10) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 13
- 125000003118 aryl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 13
- 125000004105 2-pyridyl group Chemical group N1=C([*])C([H])=C([H])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 claims description 12
- 125000003349 3-pyridyl group Chemical group N1=C([H])C([*])=C([H])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 claims description 12
- 125000000339 4-pyridyl group Chemical group N1=C([H])C([H])=C([*])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 claims description 12
- 239000003937 drug carrier Substances 0.000 claims description 9
- 229910052736 halogen Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 9
- 125000005843 halogen group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 9
- 125000000753 cycloalkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 8
- 125000001072 heteroaryl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 8
- 125000002496 methyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])* 0.000 claims description 8
- QJGQUHMNIGDVPM-UHFFFAOYSA-N nitrogen group Chemical group [N] QJGQUHMNIGDVPM-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 claims description 8
- 125000006702 (C1-C18) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 6
- 125000004169 (C1-C6) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 6
- 125000000041 C6-C10 aryl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 6
- 125000006615 aromatic heterocyclic group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 6
- 150000002367 halogens Chemical class 0.000 claims description 6
- 125000000592 heterocycloalkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 6
- 229910052760 oxygen Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 6
- 125000001495 ethyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])([H])* 0.000 claims description 4
- 125000000956 methoxy group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])O* 0.000 claims description 4
- 229910052705 radium Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 4
- 229910052701 rubidium Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 4
- 125000003107 substituted aryl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 4
- 125000000027 (C1-C10) alkoxy group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000003837 (C1-C20) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000006273 (C1-C3) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000006274 (C1-C3)alkoxy group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000004209 (C1-C8) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000006584 (C3-C10) heterocycloalkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000006552 (C3-C8) cycloalkyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000006374 C2-C10 alkenyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000005865 C2-C10alkynyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000002947 alkylene group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 229910002091 carbon monoxide Inorganic materials 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000000449 nitro group Chemical group [O-][N+](*)=O 0.000 claims description 2
- 125000004665 trialkylsilyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims description 2
- 229920000180 alkyd Polymers 0.000 claims 1
- 125000001589 carboacyl group Chemical group 0.000 claims 1
- ULGZDMOVFRHVEP-RWJQBGPGSA-N Erythromycin Natural products O([C@@H]1[C@@H](C)C(=O)O[C@@H]([C@@]([C@H](O)[C@@H](C)C(=O)[C@H](C)C[C@@](C)(O)[C@H](O[C@H]2[C@@H]([C@H](C[C@@H](C)O2)N(C)C)O)[C@H]1C)(C)O)CC)[C@H]1C[C@@](C)(OC)[C@@H](O)[C@H](C)O1 ULGZDMOVFRHVEP-RWJQBGPGSA-N 0.000 description 80
- 0 *[C@H]1[C@H](O[C@@H]2[C@@H](C)[Y]C([5*])(C)C(=O)O[C@H]([17*])[C@]([1*])(C)C([2*])C(C)*C(*)(C)C[C@@]2([3*])C)O[C@H](C)C[C@@H]1N(C)C Chemical compound *[C@H]1[C@H](O[C@@H]2[C@@H](C)[Y]C([5*])(C)C(=O)O[C@H]([17*])[C@]([1*])(C)C([2*])C(C)*C(*)(C)C[C@@]2([3*])C)O[C@H](C)C[C@@H]1N(C)C 0.000 description 70
- 102100029437 Serine/threonine-protein kinase A-Raf Human genes 0.000 description 63
- 238000011068 loading method Methods 0.000 description 62
- 239000007858 starting material Substances 0.000 description 58
- 235000002639 sodium chloride Nutrition 0.000 description 44
- 229960003276 erythromycin Drugs 0.000 description 42
- 108090000623 proteins and genes Proteins 0.000 description 41
- YMWUJEATGCHHMB-UHFFFAOYSA-N Dichloromethane Chemical compound ClCCl YMWUJEATGCHHMB-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 39
- 239000000203 mixture Substances 0.000 description 35
- 230000015572 biosynthetic process Effects 0.000 description 29
- 239000002585 base Substances 0.000 description 28
- 238000006243 chemical reaction Methods 0.000 description 28
- 229930001119 polyketide Natural products 0.000 description 25
- 238000003786 synthesis reaction Methods 0.000 description 25
- HEMHJVSKTPXQMS-UHFFFAOYSA-M Sodium hydroxide Chemical compound [OH-].[Na+] HEMHJVSKTPXQMS-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 24
- GQHTUMJGOHRCHB-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2,3,4,6,7,8,9,10-octahydropyrimido[1,2-a]azepine Chemical compound C1CCCCN2CCCN=C21 GQHTUMJGOHRCHB-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 22
- 208000035143 Bacterial infection Diseases 0.000 description 22
- 208000022362 bacterial infectious disease Diseases 0.000 description 22
- 239000003120 macrolide antibiotic agent Substances 0.000 description 22
- 125000000830 polyketide group Chemical group 0.000 description 22
- 239000000047 product Substances 0.000 description 22
- ZMANZCXQSJIPKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N Triethylamine Chemical compound CCN(CC)CC ZMANZCXQSJIPKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 21
- 239000002253 acid Substances 0.000 description 21
- 208000037265 diseases, disorders, signs and symptoms Diseases 0.000 description 18
- 239000003795 chemical substances by application Substances 0.000 description 17
- 238000004519 manufacturing process Methods 0.000 description 17
- 239000000243 solution Substances 0.000 description 16
- 229930006677 Erythromycin A Natural products 0.000 description 15
- 208000035475 disorder Diseases 0.000 description 15
- LFQSCWFLJHTTHZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Ethanol Chemical compound CCO LFQSCWFLJHTTHZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 14
- 230000000694 effects Effects 0.000 description 14
- 108091008053 gene clusters Proteins 0.000 description 14
- 238000012360 testing method Methods 0.000 description 14
- QTBSBXVTEAMEQO-UHFFFAOYSA-N Acetic acid Chemical compound CC(O)=O QTBSBXVTEAMEQO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 13
- 238000003556 assay Methods 0.000 description 13
- 238000007796 conventional method Methods 0.000 description 13
- 239000011541 reaction mixture Substances 0.000 description 13
- XLYOFNOQVPJJNP-UHFFFAOYSA-N water Substances O XLYOFNOQVPJJNP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 13
- QTBSBXVTEAMEQO-UHFFFAOYSA-M Acetate Chemical compound CC([O-])=O QTBSBXVTEAMEQO-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 12
- CSCPPACGZOOCGX-UHFFFAOYSA-N Acetone Chemical compound CC(C)=O CSCPPACGZOOCGX-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 12
- 108020004414 DNA Proteins 0.000 description 12
- 210000004027 cell Anatomy 0.000 description 12
- 239000001257 hydrogen Substances 0.000 description 12
- 241000193996 Streptococcus pyogenes Species 0.000 description 11
- 230000029936 alkylation Effects 0.000 description 11
- 238000005804 alkylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 11
- 239000003242 anti bacterial agent Substances 0.000 description 11
- 230000001580 bacterial effect Effects 0.000 description 11
- 208000028172 protozoa infectious disease Diseases 0.000 description 11
- 241000271566 Aves Species 0.000 description 10
- XBDQKXXYIPTUBI-UHFFFAOYSA-M Propionate Chemical compound CCC([O-])=O XBDQKXXYIPTUBI-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 10
- 206010037075 Protozoal infections Diseases 0.000 description 10
- 239000003153 chemical reaction reagent Substances 0.000 description 10
- 238000002360 preparation method Methods 0.000 description 10
- 125000006239 protecting group Chemical group 0.000 description 10
- 238000005932 reductive alkylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 10
- 241001465754 Metazoa Species 0.000 description 9
- 239000007832 Na2SO4 Substances 0.000 description 9
- DNIAPMSPPWPWGF-UHFFFAOYSA-N Propylene glycol Chemical compound CC(O)CO DNIAPMSPPWPWGF-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 9
- PMZURENOXWZQFD-UHFFFAOYSA-L Sodium Sulfate Chemical compound [Na+].[Na+].[O-]S([O-])(=O)=O PMZURENOXWZQFD-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 9
- 150000002148 esters Chemical class 0.000 description 9
- 238000001914 filtration Methods 0.000 description 9
- 229940041033 macrolides Drugs 0.000 description 9
- 230000009467 reduction Effects 0.000 description 9
- 238000006722 reduction reaction Methods 0.000 description 9
- 229910052938 sodium sulfate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 9
- 239000000126 substance Substances 0.000 description 9
- 239000005660 Abamectin Substances 0.000 description 8
- 241000283690 Bos taurus Species 0.000 description 8
- HEDRZPFGACZZDS-UHFFFAOYSA-N Chloroform Chemical compound ClC(Cl)Cl HEDRZPFGACZZDS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 8
- IAZDPXIOMUYVGZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Dimethylsulphoxide Chemical compound CS(C)=O IAZDPXIOMUYVGZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 8
- WSFSSNUMVMOOMR-UHFFFAOYSA-N Formaldehyde Chemical compound O=C WSFSSNUMVMOOMR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 8
- 241000606856 Pasteurella multocida Species 0.000 description 8
- JUJWROOIHBZHMG-UHFFFAOYSA-N Pyridine Chemical compound C1=CC=NC=C1 JUJWROOIHBZHMG-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 8
- 241000191967 Staphylococcus aureus Species 0.000 description 8
- 230000000844 anti-bacterial effect Effects 0.000 description 8
- 239000007864 aqueous solution Substances 0.000 description 8
- RRZXIRBKKLTSOM-XPNPUAGNSA-N avermectin B1a Chemical compound C1=C[C@H](C)[C@@H]([C@@H](C)CC)O[C@]11O[C@H](C\C=C(C)\[C@@H](O[C@@H]2O[C@@H](C)[C@H](O[C@@H]3O[C@@H](C)[C@H](O)[C@@H](OC)C3)[C@@H](OC)C2)[C@@H](C)\C=C\C=C/2[C@]3([C@H](C(=O)O4)C=C(C)[C@@H](O)[C@H]3OC\2)O)C[C@H]4C1 RRZXIRBKKLTSOM-XPNPUAGNSA-N 0.000 description 8
- AJSDVNKVGFVAQU-BIIVOSGPSA-N cladinose Chemical class O=CC[C@@](C)(OC)[C@@H](O)[C@H](C)O AJSDVNKVGFVAQU-BIIVOSGPSA-N 0.000 description 8
- 238000010276 construction Methods 0.000 description 8
- 238000000855 fermentation Methods 0.000 description 8
- 230000004151 fermentation Effects 0.000 description 8
- BDAGIHXWWSANSR-UHFFFAOYSA-N methanoic acid Natural products OC=O BDAGIHXWWSANSR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 8
- 239000013612 plasmid Substances 0.000 description 8
- 230000008569 process Effects 0.000 description 8
- 239000007787 solid Substances 0.000 description 8
- VTIKDEXOEJDMJP-UHFFFAOYSA-N Actinorhodine Natural products CC1OC(CC(=O)O)CC2=C1C(=O)c3c(O)c(cc(O)c3C2=O)c4cc(O)c5C(=O)C6=C(C(C)OC(CC(=O)O)C6)C(=O)c5c4O VTIKDEXOEJDMJP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 7
- 241000187432 Streptomyces coelicolor Species 0.000 description 7
- VTIKDEXOEJDMJP-WYUUTHIRSA-N actinorhodin Chemical compound C([C@@H](CC(O)=O)O[C@@H]1C)C(C(C2=C(O)C=3)=O)=C1C(=O)C2=C(O)C=3C(C(=C1C2=O)O)=CC(O)=C1C(=O)C1=C2[C@@H](C)O[C@H](CC(O)=O)C1 VTIKDEXOEJDMJP-WYUUTHIRSA-N 0.000 description 7
- 229940088710 antibiotic agent Drugs 0.000 description 7
- PFKFTWBEEFSNDU-UHFFFAOYSA-N carbonyldiimidazole Chemical compound C1=CN=CN1C(=O)N1C=CN=C1 PFKFTWBEEFSNDU-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 7
- 239000003085 diluting agent Substances 0.000 description 7
- 150000003881 polyketide derivatives Chemical class 0.000 description 7
- ZAHRKKWIAAJSAO-UHFFFAOYSA-N rapamycin Natural products COCC(O)C(=C/C(C)C(=O)CC(OC(=O)C1CCCCN1C(=O)C(=O)C2(O)OC(CC(OC)C(=CC=CC=CC(C)CC(C)C(=O)C)C)CCC2C)C(C)CC3CCC(O)C(C3)OC)C ZAHRKKWIAAJSAO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 7
- QFJCIRLUMZQUOT-HPLJOQBZSA-N sirolimus Chemical compound C1C[C@@H](O)[C@H](OC)C[C@@H]1C[C@@H](C)[C@H]1OC(=O)[C@@H]2CCCCN2C(=O)C(=O)[C@](O)(O2)[C@H](C)CC[C@H]2C[C@H](OC)/C(C)=C/C=C/C=C/[C@@H](C)C[C@@H](C)C(=O)[C@H](OC)[C@H](O)/C(C)=C/[C@@H](C)C(=O)C1 QFJCIRLUMZQUOT-HPLJOQBZSA-N 0.000 description 7
- 229960002930 sirolimus Drugs 0.000 description 7
- 230000009466 transformation Effects 0.000 description 7
- ACTOXUHEUCPTEW-BWHGAVFKSA-N 2-[(4r,5s,6s,7r,9r,10r,11e,13e,16r)-6-[(2s,3r,4r,5s,6r)-5-[(2s,4r,5s,6s)-4,5-dihydroxy-4,6-dimethyloxan-2-yl]oxy-4-(dimethylamino)-3-hydroxy-6-methyloxan-2-yl]oxy-10-[(2s,5s,6r)-5-(dimethylamino)-6-methyloxan-2-yl]oxy-4-hydroxy-5-methoxy-9,16-dimethyl-2-o Chemical compound O([C@H]1/C=C/C=C/C[C@@H](C)OC(=O)C[C@@H](O)[C@@H]([C@H]([C@@H](CC=O)C[C@H]1C)O[C@H]1[C@@H]([C@H]([C@H](O[C@@H]2O[C@@H](C)[C@H](O)[C@](C)(O)C2)[C@@H](C)O1)N(C)C)O)OC)[C@@H]1CC[C@H](N(C)C)[C@@H](C)O1 ACTOXUHEUCPTEW-BWHGAVFKSA-N 0.000 description 6
- 238000006237 Beckmann rearrangement reaction Methods 0.000 description 6
- WVDDGKGOMKODPV-UHFFFAOYSA-N Benzyl alcohol Chemical compound OCC1=CC=CC=C1 WVDDGKGOMKODPV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 6
- XEKOWRVHYACXOJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Ethyl acetate Chemical compound CCOC(C)=O XEKOWRVHYACXOJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 6
- 241000606768 Haemophilus influenzae Species 0.000 description 6
- 241001293418 Mannheimia haemolytica Species 0.000 description 6
- OKKJLVBELUTLKV-UHFFFAOYSA-N Methanol Chemical compound OC OKKJLVBELUTLKV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 6
- 241000187559 Saccharopolyspora erythraea Species 0.000 description 6
- 239000004187 Spiramycin Substances 0.000 description 6
- 241000193998 Streptococcus pneumoniae Species 0.000 description 6
- 150000007513 acids Chemical class 0.000 description 6
- 239000012190 activator Substances 0.000 description 6
- 238000000429 assembly Methods 0.000 description 6
- 230000000712 assembly Effects 0.000 description 6
- 150000001732 carboxylic acid derivatives Chemical group 0.000 description 6
- 238000009903 catalytic hydrogenation reaction Methods 0.000 description 6
- 239000003638 chemical reducing agent Substances 0.000 description 6
- 125000001995 cyclobutyl group Chemical group [H]C1([H])C([H])([H])C([H])(*)C1([H])[H] 0.000 description 6
- 125000001559 cyclopropyl group Chemical group [H]C1([H])C([H])([H])C1([H])* 0.000 description 6
- KPUWHANPEXNPJT-UHFFFAOYSA-N disiloxane Chemical class [SiH3]O[SiH3] KPUWHANPEXNPJT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 6
- 239000002552 dosage form Substances 0.000 description 6
- 125000004435 hydrogen atom Chemical group [H]* 0.000 description 6
- 125000004123 n-propyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])* 0.000 description 6
- 231100000252 nontoxic Toxicity 0.000 description 6
- 230000003000 nontoxic effect Effects 0.000 description 6
- 150000002923 oximes Chemical class 0.000 description 6
- 229920001184 polypeptide Chemical group 0.000 description 6
- 108090000765 processed proteins & peptides Chemical group 0.000 description 6
- 102000004196 processed proteins & peptides Human genes 0.000 description 6
- 239000011734 sodium Substances 0.000 description 6
- 229960001294 spiramycin Drugs 0.000 description 6
- 235000019372 spiramycin Nutrition 0.000 description 6
- 229930191512 spiramycin Natural products 0.000 description 6
- 229940031000 streptococcus pneumoniae Drugs 0.000 description 6
- 239000000725 suspension Substances 0.000 description 6
- BVKZGUZCCUSVTD-UHFFFAOYSA-L Carbonate Chemical compound [O-]C([O-])=O BVKZGUZCCUSVTD-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 5
- 102000004190 Enzymes Human genes 0.000 description 5
- 108090000790 Enzymes Proteins 0.000 description 5
- 241000588724 Escherichia coli Species 0.000 description 5
- 241000282412 Homo Species 0.000 description 5
- VEXZGXHMUGYJMC-UHFFFAOYSA-N Hydrochloric acid Chemical compound Cl VEXZGXHMUGYJMC-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 5
- DGAQECJNVWCQMB-PUAWFVPOSA-M Ilexoside XXIX Chemical compound C[C@@H]1CC[C@@]2(CC[C@@]3(C(=CC[C@H]4[C@]3(CC[C@@H]5[C@@]4(CC[C@@H](C5(C)C)OS(=O)(=O)[O-])C)C)[C@@H]2[C@]1(C)O)C)C(=O)O[C@H]6[C@@H]([C@H]([C@@H]([C@H](O6)CO)O)O)O.[Na+] DGAQECJNVWCQMB-PUAWFVPOSA-M 0.000 description 5
- OFOBLEOULBTSOW-UHFFFAOYSA-N Malonic acid Chemical group OC(=O)CC(O)=O OFOBLEOULBTSOW-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 5
- 241000699670 Mus sp. Species 0.000 description 5
- RZPAKFUAFGMUPI-UHFFFAOYSA-N Oleandomycin Natural products O1C(C)C(O)C(OC)CC1OC1C(C)C(=O)OC(C)C(C)C(O)C(C)C(=O)C2(OC2)CC(C)C(OC2C(C(CC(C)O2)N(C)C)O)C1C RZPAKFUAFGMUPI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 5
- 239000004104 Oleandomycin Substances 0.000 description 5
- FAPWRFPIFSIZLT-UHFFFAOYSA-M Sodium chloride Chemical compound [Na+].[Cl-] FAPWRFPIFSIZLT-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 5
- 239000003904 antiprotozoal agent Substances 0.000 description 5
- 230000003115 biocidal effect Effects 0.000 description 5
- 230000001851 biosynthetic effect Effects 0.000 description 5
- 238000007385 chemical modification Methods 0.000 description 5
- 239000003814 drug Substances 0.000 description 5
- 238000009472 formulation Methods 0.000 description 5
- 229940047650 haemophilus influenzae Drugs 0.000 description 5
- 239000007788 liquid Substances 0.000 description 5
- RZPAKFUAFGMUPI-KGIGTXTPSA-N oleandomycin Chemical compound O1[C@@H](C)[C@H](O)[C@@H](OC)C[C@@H]1O[C@@H]1[C@@H](C)C(=O)O[C@H](C)[C@H](C)[C@H](O)[C@@H](C)C(=O)[C@]2(OC2)C[C@H](C)[C@H](O[C@H]2[C@@H]([C@H](C[C@@H](C)O2)N(C)C)O)[C@H]1C RZPAKFUAFGMUPI-KGIGTXTPSA-N 0.000 description 5
- 229960002351 oleandomycin Drugs 0.000 description 5
- 235000019367 oleandomycin Nutrition 0.000 description 5
- 150000007524 organic acids Chemical class 0.000 description 5
- 230000002829 reductive effect Effects 0.000 description 5
- 230000008261 resistance mechanism Effects 0.000 description 5
- 229910052708 sodium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 5
- 239000012265 solid product Substances 0.000 description 5
- 239000002904 solvent Substances 0.000 description 5
- 230000001225 therapeutic effect Effects 0.000 description 5
- XXJGBENTLXFVFI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 1-amino-methylene Chemical compound N[CH2] XXJGBENTLXFVFI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- YHVUVJYEERGYNU-UHFFFAOYSA-N 4',8-Di-Me ether-5,7,8-Trihydroxy-3-(4-hydroxybenzyl)-4-chromanone Natural products COC1(C)CC(O)OC(C)C1O YHVUVJYEERGYNU-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- OSWFIVFLDKOXQC-UHFFFAOYSA-N 4-(3-methoxyphenyl)aniline Chemical compound COC1=CC=CC(C=2C=CC(N)=CC=2)=C1 OSWFIVFLDKOXQC-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- YYROPELSRYBVMQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 4-toluenesulfonyl chloride Chemical compound CC1=CC=C(S(Cl)(=O)=O)C=C1 YYROPELSRYBVMQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- HBAQYPYDRFILMT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 8-[3-(1-cyclopropylpyrazol-4-yl)-1H-pyrazolo[4,3-d]pyrimidin-5-yl]-3-methyl-3,8-diazabicyclo[3.2.1]octan-2-one Chemical class C1(CC1)N1N=CC(=C1)C1=NNC2=C1N=C(N=C2)N1C2C(N(CC1CC2)C)=O HBAQYPYDRFILMT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- GUBGYTABKSRVRQ-QKKXKWKRSA-N Lactose Natural products OC[C@H]1O[C@@H](O[C@H]2[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)C(O)O[C@@H]2CO)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@H]1O GUBGYTABKSRVRQ-QKKXKWKRSA-N 0.000 description 4
- REPPNUPKOJKPSP-ZZNWINOMSA-N Niddamycin Chemical compound CO[C@H]1[C@H](O)CC(=O)O[C@H](C)C\C=C\C=C\C(=O)[C@H](C)C[C@H](CC=O)[C@@H]1O[C@H]1[C@H](O)[C@@H](N(C)C)[C@H](O[C@@H]2O[C@@H](C)[C@H](OC(=O)C(C)C)[C@](C)(O)C2)[C@@H](C)O1 REPPNUPKOJKPSP-ZZNWINOMSA-N 0.000 description 4
- PXUIVECFRJIQIG-UHFFFAOYSA-N Niddamycin Natural products COC1C(CC(CC(C)C(=O)C=CC=C/CC(C)OC(=O)CC1OC(=O)C)C=O)OC2OC(C)C(OC3CC(C)(O)C(OC(=O)CC(C)C)C(C)O3)C(C2O)N(C)C PXUIVECFRJIQIG-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- 241000193985 Streptococcus agalactiae Species 0.000 description 4
- QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-N Sulfuric acid Chemical compound OS(O)(=O)=O QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- 229960000583 acetic acid Drugs 0.000 description 4
- ZSLZBFCDCINBPY-ZSJPKINUSA-N acetyl-CoA Chemical compound O[C@@H]1[C@H](OP(O)(O)=O)[C@@H](COP(O)(=O)OP(O)(=O)OCC(C)(C)[C@@H](O)C(=O)NCCC(=O)NCCSC(=O)C)O[C@H]1N1C2=NC=NC(N)=C2N=C1 ZSLZBFCDCINBPY-ZSJPKINUSA-N 0.000 description 4
- 125000002252 acyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 4
- 238000005917 acylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 4
- 150000001540 azides Chemical class 0.000 description 4
- 150000001768 cations Chemical class 0.000 description 4
- 210000000349 chromosome Anatomy 0.000 description 4
- 239000002270 dispersing agent Substances 0.000 description 4
- 238000005516 engineering process Methods 0.000 description 4
- 235000019253 formic acid Nutrition 0.000 description 4
- 230000002140 halogenating effect Effects 0.000 description 4
- 239000002609 medium Substances 0.000 description 4
- 150000007522 mineralic acids Chemical class 0.000 description 4
- 239000003960 organic solvent Substances 0.000 description 4
- 238000007254 oxidation reaction Methods 0.000 description 4
- 230000037361 pathway Effects 0.000 description 4
- 238000003752 polymerase chain reaction Methods 0.000 description 4
- KWYUFKZDYYNOTN-UHFFFAOYSA-M potassium hydroxide Inorganic materials [OH-].[K+] KWYUFKZDYYNOTN-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 4
- 238000012545 processing Methods 0.000 description 4
- UMJSCPRVCHMLSP-UHFFFAOYSA-N pyridine Natural products COC1=CC=CN=C1 UMJSCPRVCHMLSP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- 238000013207 serial dilution Methods 0.000 description 4
- 238000007920 subcutaneous administration Methods 0.000 description 4
- JOXIMZWYDAKGHI-UHFFFAOYSA-N toluene-4-sulfonic acid Chemical compound CC1=CC=C(S(O)(=O)=O)C=C1 JOXIMZWYDAKGHI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- RIOQSEWOXXDEQQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N triphenylphosphine Chemical compound C1=CC=CC=C1P(C=1C=CC=CC=1)C1=CC=CC=C1 RIOQSEWOXXDEQQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 4
- 229920001817 Agar Polymers 0.000 description 3
- 241000282472 Canis lupus familiaris Species 0.000 description 3
- 241000193403 Clostridium Species 0.000 description 3
- LYCAIKOWRPUZTN-UHFFFAOYSA-N Ethylene glycol Chemical compound OCCO LYCAIKOWRPUZTN-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 241000282326 Felis catus Species 0.000 description 3
- 241000282414 Homo sapiens Species 0.000 description 3
- UFHFLCQGNIYNRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N Hydrogen Chemical compound [H][H] UFHFLCQGNIYNRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 101150052154 MSRA1 gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 239000012359 Methanesulfonyl chloride Substances 0.000 description 3
- 229930191564 Monensin Natural products 0.000 description 3
- GAOZTHIDHYLHMS-UHFFFAOYSA-N Monensin A Natural products O1C(CC)(C2C(CC(O2)C2C(CC(C)C(O)(CO)O2)C)C)CCC1C(O1)(C)CCC21CC(O)C(C)C(C(C)C(OC)C(C)C(O)=O)O2 GAOZTHIDHYLHMS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 241000588655 Moraxella catarrhalis Species 0.000 description 3
- 108091028043 Nucleic acid sequence Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 229910019142 PO4 Inorganic materials 0.000 description 3
- 108010030975 Polyketide Synthases Proteins 0.000 description 3
- ZLMJMSJWJFRBEC-UHFFFAOYSA-N Potassium Chemical compound [K] ZLMJMSJWJFRBEC-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- VYPSYNLAJGMNEJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Silicium dioxide Chemical compound O=[Si]=O VYPSYNLAJGMNEJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- UIIMBOGNXHQVGW-UHFFFAOYSA-M Sodium bicarbonate Chemical class [Na+].OC([O-])=O UIIMBOGNXHQVGW-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 3
- 241000191963 Staphylococcus epidermidis Species 0.000 description 3
- 241000187747 Streptomyces Species 0.000 description 3
- 239000004182 Tylosin Substances 0.000 description 3
- 229930194936 Tylosin Natural products 0.000 description 3
- 230000002378 acidificating effect Effects 0.000 description 3
- 239000008272 agar Substances 0.000 description 3
- 229910052783 alkali metal Inorganic materials 0.000 description 3
- 150000001408 amides Chemical class 0.000 description 3
- 150000001412 amines Chemical class 0.000 description 3
- 235000001014 amino acid Nutrition 0.000 description 3
- 125000000539 amino acid group Chemical group 0.000 description 3
- 150000001413 amino acids Chemical class 0.000 description 3
- WPYMKLBDIGXBTP-UHFFFAOYSA-N benzoic acid Chemical compound OC(=O)C1=CC=CC=C1 WPYMKLBDIGXBTP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 239000000969 carrier Substances 0.000 description 3
- 238000004587 chromatography analysis Methods 0.000 description 3
- 238000002648 combination therapy Methods 0.000 description 3
- 235000014113 dietary fatty acids Nutrition 0.000 description 3
- 201000010099 disease Diseases 0.000 description 3
- 229940079593 drug Drugs 0.000 description 3
- 239000000839 emulsion Substances 0.000 description 3
- 238000006345 epimerization reaction Methods 0.000 description 3
- 238000001704 evaporation Methods 0.000 description 3
- 239000000194 fatty acid Substances 0.000 description 3
- 229930195729 fatty acid Natural products 0.000 description 3
- 150000004665 fatty acids Chemical class 0.000 description 3
- 239000000706 filtrate Substances 0.000 description 3
- 239000012458 free base Substances 0.000 description 3
- 125000000524 functional group Chemical group 0.000 description 3
- 229940093915 gynecological organic acid Drugs 0.000 description 3
- 238000001727 in vivo Methods 0.000 description 3
- 238000001802 infusion Methods 0.000 description 3
- 230000002401 inhibitory effect Effects 0.000 description 3
- QARBMVPHQWIHKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N methanesulfonyl chloride Chemical compound CS(Cl)(=O)=O QARBMVPHQWIHKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 230000004048 modification Effects 0.000 description 3
- 238000012986 modification Methods 0.000 description 3
- 229960005358 monensin Drugs 0.000 description 3
- GAOZTHIDHYLHMS-KEOBGNEYSA-N monensin A Chemical compound C([C@@](O1)(C)[C@H]2CC[C@@](O2)(CC)[C@H]2[C@H](C[C@@H](O2)[C@@H]2[C@H](C[C@@H](C)[C@](O)(CO)O2)C)C)C[C@@]21C[C@H](O)[C@@H](C)[C@@H]([C@@H](C)[C@@H](OC)[C@H](C)C(O)=O)O2 GAOZTHIDHYLHMS-KEOBGNEYSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 101150021123 msrA gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 101150114366 msrA2 gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 101150006794 msrAB gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 101150109310 msrAB1 gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 101150052209 msrAB2 gene Proteins 0.000 description 3
- 235000005985 organic acids Nutrition 0.000 description 3
- 230000003647 oxidation Effects 0.000 description 3
- 244000052769 pathogen Species 0.000 description 3
- 239000000546 pharmaceutical excipient Substances 0.000 description 3
- 235000021317 phosphate Nutrition 0.000 description 3
- 229920001223 polyethylene glycol Polymers 0.000 description 3
- 102000004169 proteins and genes Human genes 0.000 description 3
- 229920006395 saturated elastomer Polymers 0.000 description 3
- 238000009097 single-agent therapy Methods 0.000 description 3
- 239000011780 sodium chloride Substances 0.000 description 3
- 239000000758 substrate Substances 0.000 description 3
- 238000002560 therapeutic procedure Methods 0.000 description 3
- WBPYTXDJUQJLPQ-VMXQISHHSA-N tylosin Chemical compound O([C@@H]1[C@@H](C)O[C@H]([C@@H]([C@H]1N(C)C)O)O[C@@H]1[C@@H](C)[C@H](O)CC(=O)O[C@@H]([C@H](/C=C(\C)/C=C/C(=O)[C@H](C)C[C@@H]1CC=O)CO[C@H]1[C@@H]([C@H](OC)[C@H](O)[C@@H](C)O1)OC)CC)[C@H]1C[C@@](C)(O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](C)O1 WBPYTXDJUQJLPQ-VMXQISHHSA-N 0.000 description 3
- 229960004059 tylosin Drugs 0.000 description 3
- 235000019375 tylosin Nutrition 0.000 description 3
- 239000013598 vector Substances 0.000 description 3
- PUPZLCDOIYMWBV-UHFFFAOYSA-N (+/-)-1,3-Butanediol Chemical compound CC(O)CCO PUPZLCDOIYMWBV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- OVSKIKFHRZPJSS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2,4-D Chemical compound OC(=O)COC1=CC=C(Cl)C=C1Cl OVSKIKFHRZPJSS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- HIXDQWDOVZUNNA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2-(3,4-dimethoxyphenyl)-5-hydroxy-7-methoxychromen-4-one Chemical compound C=1C(OC)=CC(O)=C(C(C=2)=O)C=1OC=2C1=CC=C(OC)C(OC)=C1 HIXDQWDOVZUNNA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 125000004204 2-methoxyphenyl group Chemical group [H]C1=C([H])C(*)=C(OC([H])([H])[H])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 description 2
- 125000004172 4-methoxyphenyl group Chemical group [H]C1=C([H])C(OC([H])([H])[H])=C([H])C([H])=C1* 0.000 description 2
- GUBGYTABKSRVRQ-XLOQQCSPSA-N Alpha-Lactose Chemical compound O[C@@H]1[C@@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@@H](CO)O[C@H]1O[C@@H]1[C@@H](CO)O[C@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@H]1O GUBGYTABKSRVRQ-XLOQQCSPSA-N 0.000 description 2
- CIWBSHSKHKDKBQ-JLAZNSOCSA-N Ascorbic acid Chemical compound OC[C@H](O)[C@H]1OC(=O)C(O)=C1O CIWBSHSKHKDKBQ-JLAZNSOCSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 241000894006 Bacteria Species 0.000 description 2
- 241001148536 Bacteroides sp. Species 0.000 description 2
- WGILHEBHARBJST-JTQLQIEISA-N CC(=C[C@H](C)C(C)C)C(=O)C(C)C Chemical compound CC(=C[C@H](C)C(C)C)C(=O)C(C)C WGILHEBHARBJST-JTQLQIEISA-N 0.000 description 2
- YOGFFOQHMPIUGJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N COC1(C)CC(OC(C(C)C)C(C)C)OC(C)C1O Chemical compound COC1(C)CC(OC(C(C)C)C(C)C)OC(C)C1O YOGFFOQHMPIUGJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- OVDRCISBELNIRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N COC1(C)CC(OC(C)(C)C)OC(C)C1O Chemical compound COC1(C)CC(OC(C)(C)C)OC(C)C1O OVDRCISBELNIRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- OYPRJOBELJOOCE-UHFFFAOYSA-N Calcium Chemical compound [Ca] OYPRJOBELJOOCE-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- VTYYLEPIZMXCLO-UHFFFAOYSA-L Calcium carbonate Chemical compound [Ca+2].[O-]C([O-])=O VTYYLEPIZMXCLO-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 2
- KXDHJXZQYSOELW-UHFFFAOYSA-M Carbamate Chemical compound NC([O-])=O KXDHJXZQYSOELW-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 2
- 101710134389 Carboxy-terminal domain RNA polymerase II polypeptide A small phosphatase 2 Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 241001647372 Chlamydia pneumoniae Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000606153 Chlamydia trachomatis Species 0.000 description 2
- KRKNYBCHXYNGOX-UHFFFAOYSA-K Citrate Chemical compound [O-]C(=O)CC(O)(CC([O-])=O)C([O-])=O KRKNYBCHXYNGOX-UHFFFAOYSA-K 0.000 description 2
- 108010065152 Coagulase Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 101710095468 Cyclase Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 241000194033 Enterococcus Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000194032 Enterococcus faecalis Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000194031 Enterococcus faecium Species 0.000 description 2
- 108090000371 Esterases Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 239000004606 Fillers/Extenders Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000005526 G1 to G0 transition Effects 0.000 description 2
- PEDCQBHIVMGVHV-UHFFFAOYSA-N Glycerine Chemical compound OCC(O)CO PEDCQBHIVMGVHV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- DHMQDGOQFOQNFH-UHFFFAOYSA-N Glycine Chemical compound NCC(O)=O DHMQDGOQFOQNFH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- WTDHULULXKLSOZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Hydroxylamine hydrochloride Chemical compound Cl.ON WTDHULULXKLSOZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 239000002841 Lewis acid Substances 0.000 description 2
- WHXSMMKQMYFTQS-UHFFFAOYSA-N Lithium Chemical compound [Li] WHXSMMKQMYFTQS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- FYYHWMGAXLPEAU-UHFFFAOYSA-N Magnesium Chemical compound [Mg] FYYHWMGAXLPEAU-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- DBTDEFJAFBUGPP-UHFFFAOYSA-N Methanethial Chemical compound S=C DBTDEFJAFBUGPP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 101001014220 Monascus pilosus Dehydrogenase mokE Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 108700026244 Open Reading Frames Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 101000573542 Penicillium citrinum Compactin nonaketide synthase, enoyl reductase component Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 241000191992 Peptostreptococcus Species 0.000 description 2
- 239000004721 Polyphenylene oxide Substances 0.000 description 2
- KAESVJOAVNADME-UHFFFAOYSA-N Pyrrole Chemical compound C=1C=CNC=1 KAESVJOAVNADME-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 241000187560 Saccharopolyspora Species 0.000 description 2
- KEAYESYHFKHZAL-UHFFFAOYSA-N Sodium Chemical compound [Na] KEAYESYHFKHZAL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- PXIPVTKHYLBLMZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Sodium azide Chemical compound [Na+].[N-]=[N+]=[N-] PXIPVTKHYLBLMZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 206010062255 Soft tissue infection Diseases 0.000 description 2
- 241000295644 Staphylococcaceae Species 0.000 description 2
- 102100021588 Sterol carrier protein 2 Human genes 0.000 description 2
- 241001312524 Streptococcus viridans Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000186988 Streptomyces antibioticus Species 0.000 description 2
- 241001468227 Streptomyces avermitilis Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000187391 Streptomyces hygroscopicus Species 0.000 description 2
- 241000282898 Sus scrofa Species 0.000 description 2
- WYURNTSHIVDZCO-UHFFFAOYSA-N Tetrahydrofuran Chemical compound C1CCOC1 WYURNTSHIVDZCO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 108091006088 activator proteins Proteins 0.000 description 2
- 239000004480 active ingredient Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000001154 acute effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 230000010933 acylation Effects 0.000 description 2
- 125000004423 acyloxy group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 150000001340 alkali metals Chemical class 0.000 description 2
- 229910052784 alkaline earth metal Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 125000005907 alkyl ester group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 230000004075 alteration Effects 0.000 description 2
- 125000003277 amino group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 230000000842 anti-protozoal effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 238000011203 antimicrobial therapy Methods 0.000 description 2
- 238000013459 approach Methods 0.000 description 2
- 239000007900 aqueous suspension Substances 0.000 description 2
- 125000002393 azetidinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 235000019445 benzyl alcohol Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- UCMIRNVEIXFBKS-UHFFFAOYSA-N beta-alanine Chemical compound NCCC(O)=O UCMIRNVEIXFBKS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 238000007068 beta-elimination reaction Methods 0.000 description 2
- 230000002457 bidirectional effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 210000004369 blood Anatomy 0.000 description 2
- 239000008280 blood Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000037396 body weight Effects 0.000 description 2
- 125000001246 bromo group Chemical group Br* 0.000 description 2
- 239000000872 buffer Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000011575 calcium Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910052791 calcium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 125000004432 carbon atom Chemical group C* 0.000 description 2
- 239000011203 carbon fibre reinforced carbon Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000001768 carboxy methyl cellulose Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000003054 catalyst Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000006285 cell suspension Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229940038705 chlamydia trachomatis Drugs 0.000 description 2
- 239000000460 chlorine Substances 0.000 description 2
- 125000001309 chloro group Chemical group Cl* 0.000 description 2
- 238000009833 condensation Methods 0.000 description 2
- 230000005494 condensation Effects 0.000 description 2
- 125000000151 cysteine group Chemical group N[C@@H](CS)C(=O)* 0.000 description 2
- 238000006114 decarboxylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 2
- 238000010511 deprotection reaction Methods 0.000 description 2
- 238000010790 dilution Methods 0.000 description 2
- 239000012895 dilution Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000012039 electrophile Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000003995 emulsifying agent Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000002255 enzymatic effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 150000002118 epoxides Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- RTZKZFJDLAIYFH-UHFFFAOYSA-N ether Substances CCOCC RTZKZFJDLAIYFH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 230000029142 excretion Effects 0.000 description 2
- 230000001747 exhibiting effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 239000000945 filler Substances 0.000 description 2
- 125000001153 fluoro group Chemical group F* 0.000 description 2
- BTCSSZJGUNDROE-UHFFFAOYSA-N gamma-aminobutyric acid Chemical compound NCCCC(O)=O BTCSSZJGUNDROE-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 239000007903 gelatin capsule Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000014509 gene expression Effects 0.000 description 2
- 125000000404 glutamine group Chemical group N[C@@H](CCC(N)=O)C(=O)* 0.000 description 2
- 125000005456 glyceride group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- UQEAIHBTYFGYIE-UHFFFAOYSA-N hexamethyldisiloxane Chemical compound C[Si](C)(C)O[Si](C)(C)C UQEAIHBTYFGYIE-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 238000004128 high performance liquid chromatography Methods 0.000 description 2
- 150000002431 hydrogen Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 238000002347 injection Methods 0.000 description 2
- 239000007924 injection Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910052500 inorganic mineral Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 230000010354 integration Effects 0.000 description 2
- 208000028774 intestinal disease Diseases 0.000 description 2
- 238000007918 intramuscular administration Methods 0.000 description 2
- 238000007912 intraperitoneal administration Methods 0.000 description 2
- 238000001990 intravenous administration Methods 0.000 description 2
- 239000002555 ionophore Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000000236 ionophoric effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 238000002955 isolation Methods 0.000 description 2
- 125000001449 isopropyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])(*)C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 2
- 239000008101 lactose Substances 0.000 description 2
- 150000007517 lewis acids Chemical class 0.000 description 2
- 125000005647 linker group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 229910052744 lithium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 229930013918 macrolide polyketide Natural products 0.000 description 2
- 125000000585 macrolide polyketide group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 239000011777 magnesium Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910052749 magnesium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- HQKMJHAJHXVSDF-UHFFFAOYSA-L magnesium stearate Chemical compound [Mg+2].CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC([O-])=O.CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC([O-])=O HQKMJHAJHXVSDF-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 2
- 229910052987 metal hydride Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 150000004681 metal hydrides Chemical class 0.000 description 2
- 235000010755 mineral Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- 239000011707 mineral Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000002480 mineral oil Substances 0.000 description 2
- 235000010446 mineral oil Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- 238000002156 mixing Methods 0.000 description 2
- 230000017066 negative regulation of growth Effects 0.000 description 2
- 239000000346 nonvolatile oil Substances 0.000 description 2
- TVMXDCGIABBOFY-UHFFFAOYSA-N octane Chemical compound CCCCCCCC TVMXDCGIABBOFY-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 239000003921 oil Substances 0.000 description 2
- 235000019198 oils Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- 230000008520 organization Effects 0.000 description 2
- MUMZUERVLWJKNR-UHFFFAOYSA-N oxoplatinum Chemical compound [Pt]=O MUMZUERVLWJKNR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 239000003208 petroleum Substances 0.000 description 2
- 230000000144 pharmacologic effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- NBIIXXVUZAFLBC-UHFFFAOYSA-K phosphate Chemical compound [O-]P([O-])([O-])=O NBIIXXVUZAFLBC-UHFFFAOYSA-K 0.000 description 2
- 239000010452 phosphate Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000013600 plasmid vector Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910003446 platinum oxide Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 229920000570 polyether Polymers 0.000 description 2
- 229920000642 polymer Polymers 0.000 description 2
- 229920000136 polysorbate Polymers 0.000 description 2
- 239000001267 polyvinylpyrrolidone Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229920000036 polyvinylpyrrolidone Polymers 0.000 description 2
- 235000013855 polyvinylpyrrolidone Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- NTTOTNSKUYCDAV-UHFFFAOYSA-N potassium hydride Chemical compound [KH] NTTOTNSKUYCDAV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 229910000105 potassium hydride Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 159000000001 potassium salts Chemical class 0.000 description 2
- ZMJJCODMIXQWCQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N potassium;di(propan-2-yl)azanide Chemical compound [K+].CC(C)[N-]C(C)C ZMJJCODMIXQWCQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 230000000069 prophylactic effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- QAQREVBBADEHPA-IEXPHMLFSA-N propionyl-CoA Chemical compound O[C@@H]1[C@H](OP(O)(O)=O)[C@@H](COP(O)(=O)OP(O)(=O)OCC(C)(C)[C@@H](O)C(=O)NCCC(=O)NCCSC(=O)CC)O[C@H]1N1C2=NC=NC(N)=C2N=C1 QAQREVBBADEHPA-IEXPHMLFSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 235000018102 proteins Nutrition 0.000 description 2
- 125000002943 quinolinyl group Chemical group N1=C(C=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 2
- 150000003254 radicals Chemical class 0.000 description 2
- 208000023504 respiratory system disease Diseases 0.000 description 2
- 206010040872 skin infection Diseases 0.000 description 2
- 239000012279 sodium borohydride Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910000033 sodium borohydride Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 239000012312 sodium hydride Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229910000104 sodium hydride Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 230000003381 solubilizing effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- 238000006467 substitution reaction Methods 0.000 description 2
- 229910052717 sulfur Inorganic materials 0.000 description 2
- 239000004094 surface-active agent Substances 0.000 description 2
- 239000000375 suspending agent Substances 0.000 description 2
- 208000024891 symptom Diseases 0.000 description 2
- 239000003826 tablet Substances 0.000 description 2
- 229940124597 therapeutic agent Drugs 0.000 description 2
- 125000000335 thiazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 2
- 238000011200 topical administration Methods 0.000 description 2
- 230000000699 topical effect Effects 0.000 description 2
- VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-UHFFFAOYSA-N trans-butenedioic acid Natural products OC(=O)C=CC(O)=O VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 238000013518 transcription Methods 0.000 description 2
- 230000035897 transcription Effects 0.000 description 2
- 230000007704 transition Effects 0.000 description 2
- SEDZOYHHAIAQIW-UHFFFAOYSA-N trimethylsilyl azide Chemical compound C[Si](C)(C)N=[N+]=[N-] SEDZOYHHAIAQIW-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 2
- 208000019206 urinary tract infection Diseases 0.000 description 2
- OGNSCSPNOLGXSM-UHFFFAOYSA-N (+/-)-DABA Natural products NCCC(N)C(O)=O OGNSCSPNOLGXSM-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- XZJAKURZQBNKKX-QFQDJZPHSA-N (3e)-3-[(2s)-1-hydroxy-2-[(1s,2s,6r)-2-[(e)-3-hydroxy-2-[(2r,3r,6s)-6-[(e,3s)-3-[(2r,3s,5r)-5-[(1s)-1-methoxyethyl]-3-methyloxolan-2-yl]but-1-enyl]-3-methyloxan-2-yl]prop-1-enyl]-6-methylcyclohexyl]propylidene]oxolane-2,4-dione Chemical compound O1[C@@H]([C@H](C)OC)C[C@H](C)[C@@H]1[C@@H](C)\C=C\[C@H]1O[C@@H](C(\CO)=C\[C@@H]2[C@H]([C@H](C)CCC2)[C@H](C)C(\O)=C\2C(OCC/2=O)=O)[C@H](C)CC1 XZJAKURZQBNKKX-QFQDJZPHSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000004178 (C1-C4) alkyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- GHOKWGTUZJEAQD-ZETCQYMHSA-N (D)-(+)-Pantothenic acid Chemical compound OCC(C)(C)[C@@H](O)C(=O)NCCC(O)=O GHOKWGTUZJEAQD-ZETCQYMHSA-N 0.000 description 1
- WRIDQFICGBMAFQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N (E)-8-Octadecenoic acid Natural products CCCCCCCCCC=CCCCCCCC(O)=O WRIDQFICGBMAFQ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- UKAUYVFTDYCKQA-UHFFFAOYSA-N -2-Amino-4-hydroxybutanoic acid Natural products OC(=O)C(N)CCO UKAUYVFTDYCKQA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- JPRPJUMQRZTTED-UHFFFAOYSA-N 1,3-dioxolanyl Chemical group [CH]1OCCO1 JPRPJUMQRZTTED-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- ONBQEOIKXPHGMB-VBSBHUPXSA-N 1-[2-[(2s,3r,4s,5r)-3,4-dihydroxy-5-(hydroxymethyl)oxolan-2-yl]oxy-4,6-dihydroxyphenyl]-3-(4-hydroxyphenyl)propan-1-one Chemical compound O[C@@H]1[C@H](O)[C@@H](CO)O[C@H]1OC1=CC(O)=CC(O)=C1C(=O)CCC1=CC=C(O)C=C1 ONBQEOIKXPHGMB-VBSBHUPXSA-N 0.000 description 1
- IIZPXYDJLKNOIY-JXPKJXOSSA-N 1-palmitoyl-2-arachidonoyl-sn-glycero-3-phosphocholine Chemical compound CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC(=O)OC[C@H](COP([O-])(=O)OCC[N+](C)(C)C)OC(=O)CCC\C=C/C\C=C/C\C=C/C\C=C/CCCCC IIZPXYDJLKNOIY-JXPKJXOSSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000001462 1-pyrrolyl group Chemical group [*]N1C([H])=C([H])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 description 1
- YBYIRNPNPLQARY-UHFFFAOYSA-N 1H-indene Natural products C1=CC=C2CC=CC2=C1 YBYIRNPNPLQARY-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- GRNOZCCBOFGDCL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2,2,2-trichloroacetyl isocyanate Chemical compound ClC(Cl)(Cl)C(=O)N=C=O GRNOZCCBOFGDCL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- CHHHXKFHOYLYRE-UHFFFAOYSA-M 2,4-Hexadienoic acid, potassium salt (1:1), (2E,4E)- Chemical compound [K+].CC=CC=CC([O-])=O CHHHXKFHOYLYRE-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- WXTMDXOMEHJXQO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2,5-dihydroxybenzoic acid Chemical compound OC(=O)C1=CC(O)=CC=C1O WXTMDXOMEHJXQO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- LEACJMVNYZDSKR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 2-octyldodecan-1-ol Chemical compound CCCCCCCCCCC(CO)CCCCCCCC LEACJMVNYZDSKR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- LQJBNNIYVWPHFW-UHFFFAOYSA-N 20:1omega9c fatty acid Natural products CCCCCCCCCCC=CCCCCCCCC(O)=O LQJBNNIYVWPHFW-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000001698 2H-pyranyl group Chemical group O1C(C=CC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- PTPROPUVXIZJPL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 3,4-dihydroxycyclohexane-1-carboxylic acid Chemical compound OC1CCC(C(O)=O)CC1O PTPROPUVXIZJPL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- BRMWTNUJHUMWMS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 3-Methylhistidine Natural products CN1C=NC(CC(N)C(O)=O)=C1 BRMWTNUJHUMWMS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 108010019608 3-Oxoacyl-(Acyl-Carrier-Protein) Synthase Proteins 0.000 description 1
- FEWJPZIEWOKRBE-UHFFFAOYSA-M 3-carboxy-2,3-dihydroxypropanoate Chemical compound OC(=O)C(O)C(O)C([O-])=O FEWJPZIEWOKRBE-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 102100037149 3-oxoacyl-[acyl-carrier-protein] synthase, mitochondrial Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 125000004364 3-pyrrolinyl group Chemical group [H]C1=C([H])C([H])([H])N(*)C1([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 125000001397 3-pyrrolyl group Chemical group [H]N1C([H])=C([*])C([H])=C1[H] 0.000 description 1
- 125000001963 4 membered heterocyclic group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000001826 4H-pyranyl group Chemical group O1C(=CCC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000002373 5 membered heterocyclic group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- ZMGMDXCADSRNCX-UHFFFAOYSA-N 5,6-dihydroxy-1,3-diazepan-2-one Chemical compound OC1CNC(=O)NCC1O ZMGMDXCADSRNCX-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- HOSGXJWQVBHGLT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 6-hydroxy-3,4-dihydro-1h-quinolin-2-one Chemical group N1C(=O)CCC2=CC(O)=CC=C21 HOSGXJWQVBHGLT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- QSBYPNXLFMSGKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 9-Heptadecensaeure Natural products CCCCCCCC=CCCCCCCCC(O)=O QSBYPNXLFMSGKH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000606750 Actinobacillus Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000186361 Actinobacteria <class> Species 0.000 description 1
- 101710146995 Acyl carrier protein Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000588986 Alcaligenes Species 0.000 description 1
- 229930183010 Amphotericin Natural products 0.000 description 1
- QGGFZZLFKABGNL-UHFFFAOYSA-N Amphotericin A Natural products OC1C(N)C(O)C(C)OC1OC1C=CC=CC=CC=CCCC=CC=CC(C)C(O)C(C)C(C)OC(=O)CC(O)CC(O)CCC(O)C(O)CC(O)CC(O)(CC(O)C2C(O)=O)OC2C1 QGGFZZLFKABGNL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 201000001320 Atherosclerosis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 241001518086 Bartonella henselae Species 0.000 description 1
- 102000011802 Beta-ketoacyl synthases Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 108050002233 Beta-ketoacyl synthases Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 102000004506 Blood Proteins Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 108010017384 Blood Proteins Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000588807 Bordetella Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000588832 Bordetella pertussis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000180135 Borrelia recurrentis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000589969 Borreliella burgdorferi Species 0.000 description 1
- 241001148534 Brachyspira Species 0.000 description 1
- QJSWXEGGSDVKFF-FEFBYIRZSA-N CC(C)/C=N1/CO[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)/N=C1/O[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)C1=NC(C)[C@H](C(C)C)O1.CC(C)[C@@H]1OCN(C(C)C)=CC1C Chemical compound CC(C)/C=N1/CO[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)/N=C1/O[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)C1=NC(C)[C@H](C(C)C)O1.CC(C)[C@@H]1OCN(C(C)C)=CC1C QJSWXEGGSDVKFF-FEFBYIRZSA-N 0.000 description 1
- JIQOAPZELPDYLG-HRZNWEMDSA-N CC(C)/N=C1/O[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)C1=NC(C)[C@H](C(C)C)O1.CC(C)CN1CO[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)[C@@H]1OCN(C(C)C)CC1C Chemical compound CC(C)/N=C1/O[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)C1=NC(C)[C@H](C(C)C)O1.CC(C)CN1CO[C@@H](C(C)C)C1C.CC(C)[C@@H]1OCN(C(C)C)CC1C JIQOAPZELPDYLG-HRZNWEMDSA-N 0.000 description 1
- HRROKTQRCYVION-LURJTMIESA-N CC(C)[C@@H](C)C=N Chemical compound CC(C)[C@@H](C)C=N HRROKTQRCYVION-LURJTMIESA-N 0.000 description 1
- SWXOTCIUFDXCSS-UHFFFAOYSA-N COC1(C)CC(OC2C(C)C(=O)OC(C)C(C)(O)C(O)C(C)NCC(C)CC(C)(O)C(OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)C2C)OC(C)C1O Chemical compound COC1(C)CC(OC2C(C)C(=O)OC(C)C(C)(O)C(O)C(C)NCC(C)CC(C)(O)C(OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)C2C)OC(C)C1O SWXOTCIUFDXCSS-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- XVYYXNZSIFJTRF-QLUKQKEMSA-N COC1(C)CC(O[C@H]2[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@](C)(O)C[C@@H](C)/C(=N\O)[C@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@](C)(O)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@@H]2C)OC(C)C1O.COC1(C)CC(O[C@H]2[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@]3(C)C[C@@H](C)/C(=N\[C@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@](C)(O)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@@H]2C)O3)OC(C)C1O.[H]N1C(=O)O[C@]2(C)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3CC(C)(OC)C(O)C(C)O3)[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@](C)(O)C[C@@H](C)CN(C)[C@H](C)[C@@H]12.[H]N1C[C@H](C)C[C@](C)(O)[C@H](OC2OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C2O)[C@@H](C)[C@H](OC2CC(C)(OC)C(O)C(C)O2)[C@@H](C)C(=O)O[C@H](C)[C@@](C)(O)[C@H](O)[C@H]1C Chemical compound COC1(C)CC(O[C@H]2[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@](C)(O)C[C@@H](C)/C(=N\O)[C@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@](C)(O)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@@H]2C)OC(C)C1O.COC1(C)CC(O[C@H]2[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@]3(C)C[C@@H](C)/C(=N\[C@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@](C)(O)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@@H]2C)O3)OC(C)C1O.[H]N1C(=O)O[C@]2(C)[C@@H](C)OC(=O)[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3CC(C)(OC)C(O)C(C)O3)[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC3OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C3O)[C@@](C)(O)C[C@@H](C)CN(C)[C@H](C)[C@@H]12.[H]N1C[C@H](C)C[C@](C)(O)[C@H](OC2OC(C)CC(N(C)C)C2O)[C@@H](C)[C@H](OC2CC(C)(OC)C(O)C(C)O2)[C@@H](C)C(=O)O[C@H](C)[C@@](C)(O)[C@H](O)[C@H]1C XVYYXNZSIFJTRF-QLUKQKEMSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000589875 Campylobacter jejuni Species 0.000 description 1
- 239000004215 Carbon black (E152) Substances 0.000 description 1
- OKTJSMMVPCPJKN-NJFSPNSNSA-N Carbon-14 Chemical compound [14C] OKTJSMMVPCPJKN-NJFSPNSNSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229920002134 Carboxymethyl cellulose Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 208000024172 Cardiovascular disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- ZAMOUSCENKQFHK-UHFFFAOYSA-N Chlorine atom Chemical compound [Cl] ZAMOUSCENKQFHK-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000193468 Clostridium perfringens Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000224483 Coccidia Species 0.000 description 1
- 206010010741 Conjunctivitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 208000031973 Conjunctivitis infective Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229920002261 Corn starch Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 241000186216 Corynebacterium Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000186227 Corynebacterium diphtheriae Species 0.000 description 1
- 241001518260 Corynebacterium minutissimum Species 0.000 description 1
- 206010011224 Cough Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 208000008953 Cryptosporidiosis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- FBPFZTCFMRRESA-KVTDHHQDSA-N D-Mannitol Chemical compound OC[C@@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@H](O)CO FBPFZTCFMRRESA-KVTDHHQDSA-N 0.000 description 1
- DSLZVSRJTYRBFB-LLEIAEIESA-N D-glucaric acid Chemical compound OC(=O)[C@@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)C(O)=O DSLZVSRJTYRBFB-LLEIAEIESA-N 0.000 description 1
- RGHNJXZEOKUKBD-SQOUGZDYSA-M D-gluconate Chemical compound OC[C@@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)C([O-])=O RGHNJXZEOKUKBD-SQOUGZDYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- AEMOLEFTQBMNLQ-AQKNRBDQSA-N D-glucopyranuronic acid Chemical compound OC1O[C@H](C(O)=O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@H]1O AEMOLEFTQBMNLQ-AQKNRBDQSA-N 0.000 description 1
- YZCKVEUIGOORGS-OUBTZVSYSA-N Deuterium Chemical compound [2H] YZCKVEUIGOORGS-OUBTZVSYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- FEWJPZIEWOKRBE-JCYAYHJZSA-N Dextrotartaric acid Chemical compound OC(=O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)C(O)=O FEWJPZIEWOKRBE-JCYAYHJZSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000605721 Dichelobacter nodosus Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000792859 Enema Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000588914 Enterobacter Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000520130 Enterococcus durans Species 0.000 description 1
- 101100119095 Enterococcus faecalis (strain ATCC 700802 / V583) ermB gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- IDRYSCOQVVUBIJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Erythromycin-B Natural products CC1C(OC2C(C(CC(C)O2)N(C)C)O)C(C)(O)CC(C)C(=O)C(C)C(O)C(C)C(CC)OC(=O)C(C)C1OC1CC(C)(OC)C(O)C(C)O1 IDRYSCOQVVUBIJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000186394 Eubacterium Species 0.000 description 1
- PXGOKWXKJXAPGV-UHFFFAOYSA-N Fluorine Chemical compound FF PXGOKWXKJXAPGV-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 206010016952 Food poisoning Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 208000019331 Foodborne disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- BDAGIHXWWSANSR-UHFFFAOYSA-M Formate Chemical compound [O-]C=O BDAGIHXWWSANSR-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-OWOJBTEDSA-N Fumaric acid Chemical compound OC(=O)\C=C\C(O)=O VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-OWOJBTEDSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000605909 Fusobacterium Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000605952 Fusobacterium necrophorum Species 0.000 description 1
- 201000000628 Gas Gangrene Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 208000005577 Gastroenteritis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 108010010803 Gelatin Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 108700039691 Genetic Promoter Regions Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 206010018364 Glomerulonephritis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- WQZGKKKJIJFFOK-GASJEMHNSA-N Glucose Natural products OC[C@H]1OC(O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@@H]1O WQZGKKKJIJFFOK-GASJEMHNSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 239000004471 Glycine Substances 0.000 description 1
- 241000589989 Helicobacter Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000590002 Helicobacter pylori Species 0.000 description 1
- 239000004705 High-molecular-weight polyethylene Substances 0.000 description 1
- 102000008100 Human Serum Albumin Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 108091006905 Human Serum Albumin Proteins 0.000 description 1
- CPELXLSAUQHCOX-UHFFFAOYSA-N Hydrogen bromide Chemical compound Br CPELXLSAUQHCOX-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- LCWXJXMHJVIJFK-UHFFFAOYSA-N Hydroxylysine Natural products NCC(O)CC(N)CC(O)=O LCWXJXMHJVIJFK-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- PMMYEEVYMWASQN-DMTCNVIQSA-N Hydroxyproline Chemical compound O[C@H]1CN[C@H](C(O)=O)C1 PMMYEEVYMWASQN-DMTCNVIQSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 238000012404 In vitro experiment Methods 0.000 description 1
- 101150111320 KS gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000588748 Klebsiella Species 0.000 description 1
- AHLPHDHHMVZTML-BYPYZUCNSA-N L-Ornithine Chemical compound NCCC[C@H](N)C(O)=O AHLPHDHHMVZTML-BYPYZUCNSA-N 0.000 description 1
- RHGKLRLOHDJJDR-BYPYZUCNSA-N L-citrulline Chemical compound NC(=O)NCCC[C@H]([NH3+])C([O-])=O RHGKLRLOHDJJDR-BYPYZUCNSA-N 0.000 description 1
- WHUUTDBJXJRKMK-VKHMYHEASA-N L-glutamic acid Chemical compound OC(=O)[C@@H](N)CCC(O)=O WHUUTDBJXJRKMK-VKHMYHEASA-N 0.000 description 1
- FFFHZYDWPBMWHY-VKHMYHEASA-N L-homocysteine Chemical compound OC(=O)[C@@H](N)CCS FFFHZYDWPBMWHY-VKHMYHEASA-N 0.000 description 1
- UKAUYVFTDYCKQA-VKHMYHEASA-N L-homoserine Chemical compound OC(=O)[C@@H](N)CCO UKAUYVFTDYCKQA-VKHMYHEASA-N 0.000 description 1
- UCUNFLYVYCGDHP-BYPYZUCNSA-N L-methionine sulfone Chemical compound CS(=O)(=O)CC[C@H](N)C(O)=O UCUNFLYVYCGDHP-BYPYZUCNSA-N 0.000 description 1
- JVTAAEKCZFNVCJ-UHFFFAOYSA-M Lactate Chemical compound CC(O)C([O-])=O JVTAAEKCZFNVCJ-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 241001148567 Lawsonia intracellularis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000589242 Legionella pneumophila Species 0.000 description 1
- 101001110310 Lentilactobacillus kefiri NADP-dependent (R)-specific alcohol dehydrogenase Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 235000010643 Leucaena leucocephala Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 240000007472 Leucaena leucocephala Species 0.000 description 1
- 108090000364 Ligases Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 102000003960 Ligases Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 241000186781 Listeria Species 0.000 description 1
- 208000016604 Lyme disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229930195725 Mannitol Natural products 0.000 description 1
- 208000010315 Mastoiditis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- AFVFQIVMOAPDHO-UHFFFAOYSA-N Methanesulfonic acid Chemical compound CS(O)(=O)=O AFVFQIVMOAPDHO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000187723 Micromonospora sp. Species 0.000 description 1
- DMUAPQTXSSNEDD-QALJCMCCSA-N Midecamycin Chemical compound C1[C@](O)(C)[C@@H](OC(=O)CC)[C@H](C)O[C@H]1O[C@H]1[C@H](N(C)C)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O[C@@H]2[C@H]([C@H](OC(=O)CC)CC(=O)O[C@H](C)C/C=C/C=C/[C@H](O)[C@H](C)C[C@@H]2CC=O)OC)O[C@@H]1C DMUAPQTXSSNEDD-QALJCMCCSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000588622 Moraxella bovis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000699666 Mus <mouse, genus> Species 0.000 description 1
- 101100240347 Mus musculus Nectin2 gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000186367 Mycobacterium avium Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000513886 Mycobacterium avium complex (MAC) Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000187482 Mycobacterium avium subsp. paratuberculosis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000187478 Mycobacterium chelonae Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000186364 Mycobacterium intracellulare Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000186363 Mycobacterium kansasii Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000186362 Mycobacterium leprae Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000187479 Mycobacterium tuberculosis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000204031 Mycoplasma Species 0.000 description 1
- 241001138504 Mycoplasma bovis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000202934 Mycoplasma pneumoniae Species 0.000 description 1
- JDHILDINMRGULE-LURJTMIESA-N N(pros)-methyl-L-histidine Chemical compound CN1C=NC=C1C[C@H](N)C(O)=O JDHILDINMRGULE-LURJTMIESA-N 0.000 description 1
- FFDGPVCHZBVARC-UHFFFAOYSA-N N,N-dimethylglycine Chemical class CN(C)CC(O)=O FFDGPVCHZBVARC-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229910002651 NO3 Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 229910020889 NaBH3 Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- RHGKLRLOHDJJDR-UHFFFAOYSA-N Ndelta-carbamoyl-DL-ornithine Natural products OC(=O)C(N)CCCNC(N)=O RHGKLRLOHDJJDR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000588652 Neisseria gonorrhoeae Species 0.000 description 1
- NHNBFGGVMKEFGY-UHFFFAOYSA-N Nitrate Chemical compound [O-][N+]([O-])=O NHNBFGGVMKEFGY-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000187681 Nocardia sp. Species 0.000 description 1
- 239000005642 Oleic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- ZQPPMHVWECSIRJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Oleic acid Natural products CCCCCCCCC=CCCCCCCCC(O)=O ZQPPMHVWECSIRJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- AHLPHDHHMVZTML-UHFFFAOYSA-N Orn-delta-NH2 Natural products NCCCC(N)C(O)=O AHLPHDHHMVZTML-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- UTJLXEIPEHZYQJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N Ornithine Natural products OC(=O)C(C)CCCN UTJLXEIPEHZYQJ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 206010031252 Osteomyelitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 206010033078 Otitis media Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 235000019483 Peanut oil Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 238000005835 Pfitzner-Moffat oxidation reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 201000007100 Pharyngitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 206010035664 Pneumonia Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229920002565 Polyethylene Glycol 400 Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 239000002202 Polyethylene glycol Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229920001214 Polysorbate 60 Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 241000605894 Porphyromonas Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000605861 Prevotella Species 0.000 description 1
- XBDQKXXYIPTUBI-UHFFFAOYSA-N Propionic acid Chemical group CCC(O)=O XBDQKXXYIPTUBI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 102000007327 Protamines Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 108010007568 Protamines Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 102000055027 Protein Methyltransferases Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 108700040121 Protein Methyltransferases Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 206010037294 Puerperal pyrexia Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 108020004511 Recombinant DNA Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 206010057190 Respiratory tract infections Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229930189077 Rifamycin Natural products 0.000 description 1
- 241000607142 Salmonella Species 0.000 description 1
- 206010040070 Septic Shock Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 238000012300 Sequence Analysis Methods 0.000 description 1
- 244000000231 Sesamum indicum Species 0.000 description 1
- 208000019802 Sexually transmitted disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- DBMJMQXJHONAFJ-UHFFFAOYSA-M Sodium laurylsulphate Chemical compound [Na+].CCCCCCCCCCCCOS([O-])(=O)=O DBMJMQXJHONAFJ-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- HVUMOYIDDBPOLL-XWVZOOPGSA-N Sorbitan monostearate Chemical compound CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC(=O)OC[C@@H](O)[C@H]1OC[C@H](O)[C@H]1O HVUMOYIDDBPOLL-XWVZOOPGSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 241000191940 Staphylococcus Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000191984 Staphylococcus haemolyticus Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000191980 Staphylococcus intermedius Species 0.000 description 1
- 241001147691 Staphylococcus saprophyticus Species 0.000 description 1
- 229920002472 Starch Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 241000194042 Streptococcus dysgalactiae Species 0.000 description 1
- 108010015795 Streptogramin B Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 108010034396 Streptogramins Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000187758 Streptomyces ambofaciens Species 0.000 description 1
- 241001509463 Streptomyces caelestis Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000187434 Streptomyces cinnamonensis Species 0.000 description 1
- 101100161930 Streptomyces coelicolor (strain ATCC BAA-471 / A3(2) / M145) actIII gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000187438 Streptomyces fradiae Species 0.000 description 1
- 241000936710 Streptomyces griseoplanus Species 0.000 description 1
- 229930006000 Sucrose Natural products 0.000 description 1
- CZMRCDWAGMRECN-UGDNZRGBSA-N Sucrose Chemical compound O[C@H]1[C@H](O)[C@@H](CO)O[C@@]1(CO)O[C@@H]1[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](CO)O1 CZMRCDWAGMRECN-UGDNZRGBSA-N 0.000 description 1
- QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-L Sulfate Chemical compound [O-]S([O-])(=O)=O QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 1
- NINIDFKCEFEMDL-UHFFFAOYSA-N Sulfur Chemical compound [S] NINIDFKCEFEMDL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 239000004098 Tetracycline Substances 0.000 description 1
- 102000005488 Thioesterase Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 229910010062 TiCl3 Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 206010044248 Toxic shock syndrome Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 231100000650 Toxic shock syndrome Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 241000589884 Treponema pallidum Species 0.000 description 1
- 208000025865 Ulcer Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 241000202921 Ureaplasma urealyticum Species 0.000 description 1
- 208000006374 Uterine Cervicitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 206010046793 Uterine inflammation Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 108010059993 Vancomycin Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 241000606834 [Haemophilus] ducreyi Species 0.000 description 1
- 206010000210 abortion Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 231100000176 abortion Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 206010000269 abscess Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229940124532 absorption promoter Drugs 0.000 description 1
- DHKHKXVYLBGOIT-UHFFFAOYSA-N acetaldehyde Diethyl Acetal Natural products CCOC(C)OCC DHKHKXVYLBGOIT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 150000001241 acetals Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- DPXJVFZANSGRMM-UHFFFAOYSA-N acetic acid;2,3,4,5,6-pentahydroxyhexanal;sodium Chemical compound [Na].CC(O)=O.OCC(O)C(O)C(O)C(O)C=O DPXJVFZANSGRMM-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000002777 acetyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C(*)=O 0.000 description 1
- 201000001028 acute contagious conjunctivitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 125000005073 adamantyl group Chemical group C12(CC3CC(CC(C1)C3)C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 239000000654 additive Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000000996 additive effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000012382 advanced drug delivery Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000002814 agar dilution Methods 0.000 description 1
- 150000001298 alcohols Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 235000010443 alginic acid Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000000783 alginic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229920000615 alginic acid Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 229960001126 alginic acid Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 150000004781 alginic acids Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 229910000272 alkali metal oxide Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 125000003545 alkoxy group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- HSFWRNGVRCDJHI-UHFFFAOYSA-N alpha-acetylene Natural products C#C HSFWRNGVRCDJHI-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- PNEYBMLMFCGWSK-UHFFFAOYSA-N aluminium oxide Inorganic materials [O-2].[O-2].[O-2].[Al+3].[Al+3] PNEYBMLMFCGWSK-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- CEGOLXSVJUTHNZ-UHFFFAOYSA-K aluminium tristearate Chemical compound [Al+3].CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC([O-])=O.CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC([O-])=O.CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC([O-])=O CEGOLXSVJUTHNZ-UHFFFAOYSA-K 0.000 description 1
- 229940063655 aluminum stearate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000003368 amide group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 229940126575 aminoglycoside Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940009444 amphotericin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- APKFDSVGJQXUKY-INPOYWNPSA-N amphotericin B Chemical compound O[C@H]1[C@@H](N)[C@H](O)[C@@H](C)O[C@H]1O[C@H]1/C=C/C=C/C=C/C=C/C=C/C=C/C=C/[C@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@@H](C)[C@H](C)OC(=O)C[C@H](O)C[C@H](O)CC[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)C[C@H](O)C[C@](O)(C[C@H](O)[C@H]2C(O)=O)O[C@H]2C1 APKFDSVGJQXUKY-INPOYWNPSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 150000001450 anions Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 125000002178 anthracenyl group Chemical group C1(=CC=CC2=CC3=CC=CC=C3C=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- PYKYMHQGRFAEBM-UHFFFAOYSA-N anthraquinone Natural products CCC(=O)c1c(O)c2C(=O)C3C(C=CC=C3O)C(=O)c2cc1CC(=O)OC PYKYMHQGRFAEBM-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 230000000845 anti-microbial effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000011482 antibacterial activity assay Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000004599 antimicrobial Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000012736 aqueous medium Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000003125 aqueous solvent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 150000001491 aromatic compounds Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 150000004945 aromatic hydrocarbons Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 150000005840 aryl radicals Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- ZDQSOHOQTUFQEM-PKUCKEGBSA-N ascomycin Chemical compound C/C([C@H]1OC(=O)[C@@H]2CCCCN2C(=O)C(=O)[C@]2(O)O[C@@H]([C@H](C[C@H]2C)OC)[C@@H](OC)C[C@@H](C)C\C(C)=C/[C@H](C(C[C@H](O)[C@H]1C)=O)CC)=C\[C@@H]1CC[C@@H](O)[C@H](OC)C1 ZDQSOHOQTUFQEM-PKUCKEGBSA-N 0.000 description 1
- ZDQSOHOQTUFQEM-XCXYXIJFSA-N ascomycin Natural products CC[C@H]1C=C(C)C[C@@H](C)C[C@@H](OC)[C@H]2O[C@@](O)([C@@H](C)C[C@H]2OC)C(=O)C(=O)N3CCCC[C@@H]3C(=O)O[C@H]([C@H](C)[C@@H](O)CC1=O)C(=C[C@@H]4CC[C@@H](O)[C@H](C4)OC)C ZDQSOHOQTUFQEM-XCXYXIJFSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229940072107 ascorbate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 235000010323 ascorbic acid Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000011668 ascorbic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- 101150036080 at gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- QVGXLLKOCUKJST-UHFFFAOYSA-N atomic oxygen Chemical compound [O] QVGXLLKOCUKJST-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- HONIICLYMWZJFZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N azetidine Chemical compound C1CNC1 HONIICLYMWZJFZ-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000003828 azulenyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 244000052616 bacterial pathogen Species 0.000 description 1
- 229940092524 bartonella henselae Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 150000007514 bases Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 235000013871 bee wax Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000012166 beeswax Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000008901 benefit Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940077388 benzenesulfonate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- SRSXLGNVWSONIS-UHFFFAOYSA-M benzenesulfonate Chemical compound [O-]S(=O)(=O)C1=CC=CC=C1 SRSXLGNVWSONIS-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 125000003785 benzimidazolyl group Chemical group N1=C(NC2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000000499 benzofuranyl group Chemical group O1C(=CC2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000004601 benzofurazanyl group Chemical group N1=C2C(=NO1)C(=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001164 benzothiazolyl group Chemical group S1C(=NC2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000004196 benzothienyl group Chemical group S1C(=CC2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000004541 benzoxazolyl group Chemical group O1C(=NC2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- WQZGKKKJIJFFOK-VFUOTHLCSA-N beta-D-glucose Chemical compound OC[C@H]1O[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](O)[C@@H]1O WQZGKKKJIJFFOK-VFUOTHLCSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229940000635 beta-alanine Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000011230 binding agent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000004071 biological effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 210000004556 brain Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 239000012267 brine Substances 0.000 description 1
- 206010006451 bronchitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 239000006227 byproduct Substances 0.000 description 1
- 210000004899 c-terminal region Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 229910000019 calcium carbonate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 239000001506 calcium phosphate Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229910000389 calcium phosphate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 235000011010 calcium phosphates Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000002775 capsule Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000013877 carbamide Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 150000001721 carbon Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000003178 carboxy group Chemical group [H]OC(*)=O 0.000 description 1
- 235000010948 carboxy methyl cellulose Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 125000002843 carboxylic acid group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 150000001735 carboxylic acids Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 239000008112 carboxymethyl-cellulose Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000012876 carrier material Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000004359 castor oil Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000019438 castor oil Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000001913 cellulose Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229920002678 cellulose Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 235000010980 cellulose Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 206010008323 cervicitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229940081733 cetearyl alcohol Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000003636 chemical group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 238000002512 chemotherapy Methods 0.000 description 1
- 229960005091 chloramphenicol Drugs 0.000 description 1
- WIIZWVCIJKGZOK-RKDXNWHRSA-N chloramphenicol Chemical compound ClC(Cl)C(=O)N[C@H](CO)[C@H](O)C1=CC=C([N+]([O-])=O)C=C1 WIIZWVCIJKGZOK-RKDXNWHRSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229910052801 chlorine Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 230000001684 chronic effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 125000000259 cinnolinyl group Chemical group N1=NC(=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 229940001468 citrate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229960002173 citrulline Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 235000013477 citrulline Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 238000003776 cleavage reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 229940110456 cocoa butter Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 235000019868 cocoa butter Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000008119 colloidal silica Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000003086 colorant Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940126142 compound 16 Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000008120 corn starch Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000006071 cream Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000012043 crude product Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000002425 crystallisation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000008025 crystallization Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000012258 culturing Methods 0.000 description 1
- 201000010251 cutis laxa Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 238000005520 cutting process Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000000113 cyclohexyl group Chemical group [H]C1([H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])(*)C([H])([H])C1([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 235000013365 dairy product Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 230000018044 dehydration Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000006297 dehydration reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000012217 deletion Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000037430 deletion Effects 0.000 description 1
- YSMODUONRAFBET-UHFFFAOYSA-N delta-DL-hydroxylysine Natural products NCC(O)CCC(N)C(O)=O YSMODUONRAFBET-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 238000003386 deoximation reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000001212 derivatisation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000001514 detection method Methods 0.000 description 1
- 229910052805 deuterium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 125000002576 diazepinyl group Chemical group N1N=C(C=CC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 235000005911 diet Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 230000037213 diet Effects 0.000 description 1
- 125000004852 dihydrofuranyl group Chemical group O1C(CC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000005043 dihydropyranyl group Chemical group O1C(CCC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000005057 dihydrothienyl group Chemical group S1C(CC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 238000003113 dilution method Methods 0.000 description 1
- GXGAKHNRMVGRPK-UHFFFAOYSA-N dimagnesium;dioxido-bis[[oxido(oxo)silyl]oxy]silane Chemical compound [Mg+2].[Mg+2].[O-][Si](=O)O[Si]([O-])([O-])O[Si]([O-])=O GXGAKHNRMVGRPK-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- GZRYBYIBLHMWCD-UHFFFAOYSA-N dimethyl(methylidene)-$l^{4}-sulfane Chemical compound CS(C)=C GZRYBYIBLHMWCD-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- DKWOHBPRFZIUQL-UHFFFAOYSA-N dimethyl-methylidene-oxo-$l^{6}-sulfane Chemical compound C[S+](C)([CH2-])=O DKWOHBPRFZIUQL-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000000532 dioxanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- ZPWVASYFFYYZEW-UHFFFAOYSA-L dipotassium hydrogen phosphate Chemical compound [K+].[K+].OP([O-])([O-])=O ZPWVASYFFYYZEW-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 1
- 229910000396 dipotassium phosphate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 235000019797 dipotassium phosphate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000007884 disintegrant Substances 0.000 description 1
- BNIILDVGGAEEIG-UHFFFAOYSA-L disodium hydrogen phosphate Chemical compound [Na+].[Na+].OP([O-])([O-])=O BNIILDVGGAEEIG-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 1
- 239000006185 dispersion Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000005883 dithianyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000005411 dithiolanyl group Chemical group S1SC(CC1)* 0.000 description 1
- PMMYEEVYMWASQN-UHFFFAOYSA-N dl-hydroxyproline Natural products OC1C[NH2+]C(C([O-])=O)C1 PMMYEEVYMWASQN-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 239000000890 drug combination Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000012377 drug delivery Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000003792 electrolyte Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000001804 emulsifying effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000008387 emulsifying waxe Substances 0.000 description 1
- 206010014665 endocarditis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 239000007920 enema Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940095399 enema Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000003623 enhancer Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000002708 enhancing effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940032049 enterococcus faecalis Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 101150016744 ermC gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- YSMODUONRAFBET-UHNVWZDZSA-N erythro-5-hydroxy-L-lysine Chemical compound NC[C@H](O)CC[C@H](N)C(O)=O YSMODUONRAFBET-UHNVWZDZSA-N 0.000 description 1
- IDRYSCOQVVUBIJ-PPGFLMPOSA-N erythromycin B Chemical compound O([C@@H]1[C@@H](C)C(=O)O[C@@H]([C@@H]([C@H](O)[C@@H](C)C(=O)[C@H](C)C[C@@](C)(O)[C@H](O[C@H]2[C@@H]([C@H](C[C@@H](C)O2)N(C)C)O)[C@H]1C)C)CC)[C@H]1C[C@@](C)(OC)[C@@H](O)[C@H](C)O1 IDRYSCOQVVUBIJ-PPGFLMPOSA-N 0.000 description 1
- CCIVGXIOQKPBKL-UHFFFAOYSA-M ethanesulfonate Chemical compound CCS([O-])(=O)=O CCIVGXIOQKPBKL-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- BEFDCLMNVWHSGT-UHFFFAOYSA-N ethenylcyclopentane Chemical compound C=CC1CCCC1 BEFDCLMNVWHSGT-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000006534 ethyl amino methyl group Chemical group [H]N(C([H])([H])*)C([H])([H])C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- PQVSTLUFSYVLTO-UHFFFAOYSA-N ethyl n-ethoxycarbonylcarbamate Chemical compound CCOC(=O)NC(=O)OCC PQVSTLUFSYVLTO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000002534 ethynyl group Chemical group [H]C#C* 0.000 description 1
- 230000008020 evaporation Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000002474 experimental method Methods 0.000 description 1
- 235000019197 fats Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 230000002349 favourable effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000012467 final product Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000000796 flavoring agent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000003983 fluorenyl group Chemical group C1(=CC=CC=2C3=CC=CC=C3CC12)* 0.000 description 1
- 239000011737 fluorine Substances 0.000 description 1
- 208000010801 foot rot Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 125000004005 formimidoyl group Chemical group [H]\N=C(/[H])* 0.000 description 1
- 238000001640 fractional crystallisation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 229940050411 fumarate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000003838 furazanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000004612 furopyridinyl group Chemical group O1C(=CC2=C1C=CC=N2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000002541 furyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 229960003692 gamma aminobutyric acid Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 210000001035 gastrointestinal tract Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 239000008273 gelatin Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229920000159 gelatin Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 235000019322 gelatine Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 235000011852 gelatine desserts Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 238000010353 genetic engineering Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000012362 glacial acetic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940050410 gluconate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000008103 glucose Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940097042 glucuronate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229930195712 glutamate Natural products 0.000 description 1
- 125000000291 glutamic acid group Chemical group N[C@@H](CCC(O)=O)C(=O)* 0.000 description 1
- 235000011187 glycerol Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- ZEMPKEQAKRGZGQ-XOQCFJPHSA-N glycerol triricinoleate Natural products CCCCCC[C@@H](O)CC=CCCCCCCCC(=O)OC[C@@H](COC(=O)CCCCCCCC=CC[C@@H](O)CCCCCC)OC(=O)CCCCCCCC=CC[C@H](O)CCCCCC ZEMPKEQAKRGZGQ-XOQCFJPHSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229960002449 glycine Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 230000003862 health status Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940037467 helicobacter pylori Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000005842 heteroatom Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- UBHWBODXJBSFLH-UHFFFAOYSA-N hexadecan-1-ol;octadecan-1-ol Chemical compound CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCO.CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCO UBHWBODXJBSFLH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 230000006801 homologous recombination Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000002744 homologous recombination Methods 0.000 description 1
- BHEPBYXIRTUNPN-UHFFFAOYSA-N hydridophosphorus(.) (triplet) Chemical compound [PH] BHEPBYXIRTUNPN-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229930195733 hydrocarbon Natural products 0.000 description 1
- XMBWDFGMSWQBCA-UHFFFAOYSA-N hydrogen iodide Chemical compound I XMBWDFGMSWQBCA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-M hydrogensulfate Chemical compound OS([O-])(=O)=O QAOWNCQODCNURD-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 230000003301 hydrolyzing effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 125000004356 hydroxy functional group Chemical group O* 0.000 description 1
- QJHBJHUKURJDLG-UHFFFAOYSA-N hydroxy-L-lysine Natural products NCCCCC(NO)C(O)=O QJHBJHUKURJDLG-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- CBOIHMRHGLHBPB-UHFFFAOYSA-N hydroxymethyl Chemical compound O[CH2] CBOIHMRHGLHBPB-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229960002591 hydroxyproline Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000002632 imidazolidinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002636 imidazolinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002883 imidazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 229960003444 immunosuppressant agent Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 230000001861 immunosuppressant effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000003018 immunosuppressive agent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000006872 improvement Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000000338 in vitro Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000011065 in-situ storage Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000002779 inactivation Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000011534 incubation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000003392 indanyl group Chemical group C1(CCC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003453 indazolyl group Chemical group N1N=C(C2=C1C=CC=C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003454 indenyl group Chemical group C1(C=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003387 indolinyl group Chemical group N1(CCC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003406 indolizinyl group Chemical group C=1(C=CN2C=CC=CC12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001041 indolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 230000000977 initiatory effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940102223 injectable solution Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940102213 injectable suspension Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 238000011081 inoculation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000002452 interceptive effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000000968 intestinal effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000003834 intracellular effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000007917 intracranial administration Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000007919 intrasynovial administration Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000007913 intrathecal administration Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000002346 iodo group Chemical group I* 0.000 description 1
- 150000002500 ions Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 125000000959 isobutyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])(C([H])([H])[H])C([H])([H])* 0.000 description 1
- 125000000904 isoindolyl group Chemical group C=1(NC=C2C=CC=CC12)* 0.000 description 1
- TWBYWOBDOCUKOW-UHFFFAOYSA-M isonicotinate Chemical compound [O-]C(=O)C1=CC=NC=C1 TWBYWOBDOCUKOW-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- QXJSBBXBKPUZAA-UHFFFAOYSA-N isooleic acid Natural products CCCCCCCC=CCCCCCCCCC(O)=O QXJSBBXBKPUZAA-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000001972 isopentyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])(C([H])([H])[H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])* 0.000 description 1
- 125000000555 isopropenyl group Chemical group [H]\C([H])=C(\*)C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 125000002183 isoquinolinyl group Chemical group C1(=NC=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001786 isothiazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000000842 isoxazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 206010023332 keratitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 150000002596 lactones Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 239000010410 layer Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000000787 lecithin Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010445 lecithin Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229940067606 lecithin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940115932 legionella pneumophila Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 231100000518 lethal Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 230000001665 lethal effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940041028 lincosamides Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940040692 lithium hydroxide monohydrate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- GLXDVVHUTZTUQK-UHFFFAOYSA-M lithium hydroxide monohydrate Substances [Li+].O.[OH-] GLXDVVHUTZTUQK-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 239000006210 lotion Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000007937 lozenge Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000000314 lubricant Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000000391 magnesium silicate Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000019359 magnesium stearate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229940099273 magnesium trisilicate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229910000386 magnesium trisilicate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 235000019793 magnesium trisilicate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-UPHRSURJSA-N maleic acid Chemical compound OC(=O)\C=C/C(O)=O VZCYOOQTPOCHFL-UPHRSURJSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 239000000594 mannitol Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010355 mannitol Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 208000004396 mastitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 239000000463 material Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000005259 measurement Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000007246 mechanism Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000001404 mediated effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 101150111763 mefA gene Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 230000002503 metabolic effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000004060 metabolic process Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000002207 metabolite Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229920000609 methyl cellulose Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 230000011987 methylation Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000007069 methylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000001923 methylcellulose Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010981 methylcellulose Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- ZIYVHBGGAOATLY-UHFFFAOYSA-N methylmalonic acid Chemical group OC(=O)C(C)C(O)=O ZIYVHBGGAOATLY-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- MZFOKIKEPGUZEN-FBMOWMAESA-N methylmalonyl-CoA Chemical compound O[C@@H]1[C@H](OP(O)(O)=O)[C@@H](COP(O)(=O)OP(O)(=O)OCC(C)(C)[C@@H](O)C(=O)NCCC(=O)NCCSC(=O)C(C(O)=O)C)O[C@H]1N1C2=NC=NC(N)=C2N=C1 MZFOKIKEPGUZEN-FBMOWMAESA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000004170 methylsulfonyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])S(*)(=O)=O 0.000 description 1
- 244000005700 microbiome Species 0.000 description 1
- 229960002757 midecamycin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940042472 mineral oil Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 238000012544 monitoring process Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000002950 monocyclic group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 210000004400 mucous membrane Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 230000035772 mutation Effects 0.000 description 1
- 229940013390 mycoplasma pneumoniae Drugs 0.000 description 1
- OWIUPIRUAQMTTK-UHFFFAOYSA-M n-aminocarbamate Chemical compound NNC([O-])=O OWIUPIRUAQMTTK-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 125000004108 n-butyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001280 n-hexyl group Chemical group C(CCCCC)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001624 naphthyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000004593 naphthyridinyl group Chemical group N1=C(C=CC2=CC=CN=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 239000007922 nasal spray Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229930014626 natural product Natural products 0.000 description 1
- LYGJENNIWJXYER-UHFFFAOYSA-N nitromethane Chemical compound C[N+]([O-])=O LYGJENNIWJXYER-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 231100000344 non-irritating Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 125000002868 norbornyl group Chemical group C12(CCC(CC1)C2)* 0.000 description 1
- 108020004707 nucleic acids Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 150000007523 nucleic acids Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 102000039446 nucleic acids Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 239000012038 nucleophile Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000010534 nucleophilic substitution reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000002674 ointment Substances 0.000 description 1
- ZQPPMHVWECSIRJ-KTKRTIGZSA-N oleic acid Chemical compound CCCCCCCC\C=C/CCCCCCCC(O)=O ZQPPMHVWECSIRJ-KTKRTIGZSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 239000004006 olive oil Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000008390 olive oil Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 210000000056 organ Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 239000012044 organic layer Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229960003104 ornithine Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000001715 oxadiazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002971 oxazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000003551 oxepanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000003566 oxetanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 238000006146 oximation reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000001301 oxygen Substances 0.000 description 1
- WLJNZVDCPSBLRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N pamoic acid Chemical class C1=CC=C2C(CC=3C4=CC=CC=C4C=C(C=3O)C(=O)O)=C(O)C(C(O)=O)=CC2=C1 WLJNZVDCPSBLRP-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229940014662 pantothenate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 235000019161 pantothenic acid Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000011713 pantothenic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000007911 parenteral administration Methods 0.000 description 1
- 230000036961 partial effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000000312 peanut oil Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000001147 pentyl group Chemical group C(CCCC)* 0.000 description 1
- 150000003013 phosphoric acid derivatives Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 150000003014 phosphoric acid esters Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 230000026731 phosphorylation Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000006366 phosphorylation reaction Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000004592 phthalazinyl group Chemical group C1(=NN=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 239000000049 pigment Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000004193 piperazinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 229920000058 polyacrylate Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 235000010482 polyoxyethylene sorbitan monooleate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000001818 polyoxyethylene sorbitan monostearate Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010989 polyoxyethylene sorbitan monostearate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229920002503 polyoxyethylene-polyoxypropylene Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 229940113124 polysorbate 60 Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229920000053 polysorbate 80 Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 229910052700 potassium Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 239000011591 potassium Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000004302 potassium sorbate Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010241 potassium sorbate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229940069338 potassium sorbate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000000843 powder Substances 0.000 description 1
- 230000002028 premature Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000003755 preservative agent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000002924 primary amino group Chemical group [H]N([H])* 0.000 description 1
- YGXCETJZBDTKRY-DZCVGBHJSA-N pristinamycin IA Chemical compound N([C@@H]1C(=O)N[C@@H](C(N2CCC[C@H]2C(=O)N(C)[C@@H](CC=2C=CC(=CC=2)N(C)C)C(=O)N2CCC(=O)C[C@H]2C(=O)N[C@H](C(=O)O[C@@H]1C)C=1C=CC=CC=1)=O)CC)C(=O)C1=NC=CC=C1O YGXCETJZBDTKRY-DZCVGBHJSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000001436 propyl group Chemical group [H]C([*])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 229950008679 protamine sulfate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000001042 pteridinyl group Chemical group N1=C(N=CC2=NC=CN=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000000561 purinyl group Chemical group N1=C(N=C2N=CNC2=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003373 pyrazinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000003072 pyrazolidinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002755 pyrazolinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000003226 pyrazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002098 pyridazinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000004076 pyridyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000000714 pyrimidinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000000719 pyrrolidinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000000168 pyrrolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002294 quinazolinyl group Chemical group N1=C(N=CC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 150000007660 quinolones Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 125000001567 quinoxalinyl group Chemical group N1=C(C=NC2=CC=CC=C12)* 0.000 description 1
- 230000002285 radioactive effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000009790 rate-determining step (RDS) Methods 0.000 description 1
- 229940100618 rectal suppository Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000006215 rectal suppository Substances 0.000 description 1
- 210000000664 rectum Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 230000001105 regulatory effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000009877 rendering Methods 0.000 description 1
- 238000011160 research Methods 0.000 description 1
- 208000020029 respiratory tract infectious disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 238000012552 review Methods 0.000 description 1
- 201000003068 rheumatic fever Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 229960003292 rifamycin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- YGSDEFSMJLZEOE-UHFFFAOYSA-M salicylate Chemical compound OC1=CC=CC=C1C([O-])=O YGSDEFSMJLZEOE-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 229960001860 salicylate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 230000007017 scission Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000012216 screening Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000002914 sec-butyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C([H])([H])C([H])(*)C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 238000012163 sequencing technique Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000008159 sesame oil Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000011803 sesame oil Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- JXOHGGNKMLTUBP-HSUXUTPPSA-N shikimic acid Chemical compound O[C@@H]1CC(C(O)=O)=C[C@@H](O)[C@H]1O JXOHGGNKMLTUBP-HSUXUTPPSA-N 0.000 description 1
- JXOHGGNKMLTUBP-JKUQZMGJSA-N shikimic acid Natural products O[C@@H]1CC(C(O)=O)=C[C@H](O)[C@@H]1O JXOHGGNKMLTUBP-JKUQZMGJSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 150000004760 silicates Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 239000000377 silicon dioxide Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229910000030 sodium bicarbonate Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 235000019812 sodium carboxymethyl cellulose Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229920001027 sodium carboxymethylcellulose Polymers 0.000 description 1
- 239000001509 sodium citrate Substances 0.000 description 1
- NLJMYIDDQXHKNR-UHFFFAOYSA-K sodium citrate Chemical compound O.O.[Na+].[Na+].[Na+].[O-]C(=O)CC(O)(CC([O-])=O)C([O-])=O NLJMYIDDQXHKNR-UHFFFAOYSA-K 0.000 description 1
- 235000019333 sodium laurylsulphate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- YVOFSHPIJOYKSH-NLYBMVFSSA-M sodium rifomycin sv Chemical compound [Na+].OC1=C(C(O)=C2C)C3=C([O-])C=C1NC(=O)\C(C)=C/C=C/[C@H](C)[C@H](O)[C@@H](C)[C@@H](O)[C@@H](C)[C@H](OC(C)=O)[C@H](C)[C@@H](OC)\C=C\O[C@@]1(C)OC2=C3C1=O YVOFSHPIJOYKSH-NLYBMVFSSA-M 0.000 description 1
- HPALAKNZSZLMCH-UHFFFAOYSA-M sodium;chloride;hydrate Chemical compound O.[Na+].[Cl-] HPALAKNZSZLMCH-UHFFFAOYSA-M 0.000 description 1
- 239000008247 solid mixture Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000010199 sorbic acid Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000004334 sorbic acid Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940075582 sorbic acid Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 239000001587 sorbitan monostearate Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000011076 sorbitan monostearate Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229940035048 sorbitan monostearate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 241000894007 species Species 0.000 description 1
- 238000001228 spectrum Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000007921 spray Substances 0.000 description 1
- 238000010561 standard procedure Methods 0.000 description 1
- 239000008107 starch Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000019698 starch Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000011550 stock solution Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229940115920 streptococcus dysgalactiae Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 229940041030 streptogramins Drugs 0.000 description 1
- KDYFGRWQOYBRFD-UHFFFAOYSA-L succinate(2-) Chemical compound [O-]C(=O)CCC([O-])=O KDYFGRWQOYBRFD-UHFFFAOYSA-L 0.000 description 1
- 239000005720 sucrose Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000011593 sulfur Substances 0.000 description 1
- 150000003467 sulfuric acid derivatives Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 239000000829 suppository Substances 0.000 description 1
- 208000011580 syndromic disease Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 230000002195 synergetic effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000002194 synthesizing effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 230000009885 systemic effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000000454 talc Substances 0.000 description 1
- 229910052623 talc Inorganic materials 0.000 description 1
- 235000012222 talc Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 229940095064 tartrate Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000000999 tert-butyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])C(*)(C([H])([H])[H])C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 235000019364 tetracycline Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 150000003522 tetracyclines Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 229940040944 tetracyclines Drugs 0.000 description 1
- MHXBHWLGRWOABW-UHFFFAOYSA-N tetradecyl octadecanoate Chemical compound CCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCCC(=O)OCCCCCCCCCCCCCC MHXBHWLGRWOABW-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- YLQBMQCUIZJEEH-UHFFFAOYSA-N tetrahydrofuran Natural products C=1C=COC=1 YLQBMQCUIZJEEH-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000003718 tetrahydrofuranyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000001412 tetrahydropyranyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000005958 tetrahydrothienyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000004632 tetrahydrothiopyranyl group Chemical group S1C(CCCC1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000003831 tetrazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 229950002881 tetronasin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- 125000001113 thiadiazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000005308 thiazepinyl group Chemical group S1N=C(C=CC=C1)* 0.000 description 1
- 125000001544 thienyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000001583 thiepanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000002053 thietanyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 108020002982 thioesterase Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 210000001519 tissue Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 238000003354 tissue distribution assay Methods 0.000 description 1
- YONPGGFAJWQGJC-UHFFFAOYSA-K titanium(iii) chloride Chemical compound Cl[Ti](Cl)Cl YONPGGFAJWQGJC-UHFFFAOYSA-K 0.000 description 1
- 206010044008 tonsillitis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- 125000002088 tosyl group Chemical group [H]C1=C([H])C(=C([H])C([H])=C1C([H])([H])[H])S(*)(=O)=O 0.000 description 1
- 231100000419 toxicity Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 230000001988 toxicity Effects 0.000 description 1
- 239000003053 toxin Substances 0.000 description 1
- 231100000765 toxin Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 239000011573 trace mineral Substances 0.000 description 1
- 235000013619 trace mineral Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 230000002103 transcriptional effect Effects 0.000 description 1
- 238000000844 transformation Methods 0.000 description 1
- 108091005703 transmembrane proteins Proteins 0.000 description 1
- 102000035160 transmembrane proteins Human genes 0.000 description 1
- 238000011269 treatment regimen Methods 0.000 description 1
- 125000004306 triazinyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- 125000001425 triazolyl group Chemical group 0.000 description 1
- QORWJWZARLRLPR-UHFFFAOYSA-H tricalcium bis(phosphate) Chemical compound [Ca+2].[Ca+2].[Ca+2].[O-]P([O-])([O-])=O.[O-]P([O-])([O-])=O QORWJWZARLRLPR-UHFFFAOYSA-H 0.000 description 1
- JLTRXTDYQLMHGR-UHFFFAOYSA-N trimethylaluminium Chemical compound C[Al](C)C JLTRXTDYQLMHGR-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 125000000026 trimethylsilyl group Chemical group [H]C([H])([H])[Si]([*])(C([H])([H])[H])C([H])([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 231100000397 ulcer Toxicity 0.000 description 1
- 241001446247 uncultured actinomycete Species 0.000 description 1
- 208000000143 urethritis Diseases 0.000 description 1
- MYPYJXKWCTUITO-LYRMYLQWSA-N vancomycin Chemical compound O([C@@H]1[C@@H](O)[C@H](O)[C@@H](CO)O[C@H]1OC1=C2C=C3C=C1OC1=CC=C(C=C1Cl)[C@@H](O)[C@H](C(N[C@@H](CC(N)=O)C(=O)N[C@H]3C(=O)N[C@H]1C(=O)N[C@H](C(N[C@@H](C3=CC(O)=CC(O)=C3C=3C(O)=CC=C1C=3)C(O)=O)=O)[C@H](O)C1=CC=C(C(=C1)Cl)O2)=O)NC(=O)[C@@H](CC(C)C)NC)[C@H]1C[C@](C)(N)[C@H](O)[C@H](C)O1 MYPYJXKWCTUITO-LYRMYLQWSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 229960003165 vancomycin Drugs 0.000 description 1
- MYPYJXKWCTUITO-UHFFFAOYSA-N vancomycin Natural products O1C(C(=C2)Cl)=CC=C2C(O)C(C(NC(C2=CC(O)=CC(O)=C2C=2C(O)=CC=C3C=2)C(O)=O)=O)NC(=O)C3NC(=O)C2NC(=O)C(CC(N)=O)NC(=O)C(NC(=O)C(CC(C)C)NC)C(O)C(C=C3Cl)=CC=C3OC3=CC2=CC1=C3OC1OC(CO)C(O)C(O)C1OC1CC(C)(N)C(O)C(C)O1 MYPYJXKWCTUITO-UHFFFAOYSA-N 0.000 description 1
- 235000013311 vegetables Nutrition 0.000 description 1
- 239000003981 vehicle Substances 0.000 description 1
- 125000000391 vinyl group Chemical group [H]C([*])=C([H])[H] 0.000 description 1
- 239000001993 wax Substances 0.000 description 1
- 239000000080 wetting agent Substances 0.000 description 1
- 210000002268 wool Anatomy 0.000 description 1
- 150000003751 zinc Chemical class 0.000 description 1
- 150000003952 β-lactams Chemical class 0.000 description 1
Classifications
-
- C—CHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
- C07—ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
- C07H—SUGARS; DERIVATIVES THEREOF; NUCLEOSIDES; NUCLEOTIDES; NUCLEIC ACIDS
- C07H17/00—Compounds containing heterocyclic radicals directly attached to hetero atoms of saccharide radicals
- C07H17/04—Heterocyclic radicals containing only oxygen as ring hetero atoms
- C07H17/08—Hetero rings containing eight or more ring members, e.g. erythromycins
-
- A—HUMAN NECESSITIES
- A61—MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
- A61K—PREPARATIONS FOR MEDICAL, DENTAL OR TOILETRY PURPOSES
- A61K31/00—Medicinal preparations containing organic active ingredients
- A61K31/70—Carbohydrates; Sugars; Derivatives thereof
- A61K31/7042—Compounds having saccharide radicals and heterocyclic rings
- A61K31/7048—Compounds having saccharide radicals and heterocyclic rings having oxygen as a ring hetero atom, e.g. leucoglucosan, hesperidin, erythromycin, nystatin, digitoxin or digoxin
-
- A—HUMAN NECESSITIES
- A61—MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
- A61P—SPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
- A61P31/00—Antiinfectives, i.e. antibiotics, antiseptics, chemotherapeutics
-
- A—HUMAN NECESSITIES
- A61—MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
- A61P—SPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
- A61P31/00—Antiinfectives, i.e. antibiotics, antiseptics, chemotherapeutics
- A61P31/04—Antibacterial agents
-
- A—HUMAN NECESSITIES
- A61—MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
- A61P—SPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
- A61P33/00—Antiparasitic agents
- A61P33/02—Antiprotozoals, e.g. for leishmaniasis, trichomoniasis, toxoplasmosis
-
- A—HUMAN NECESSITIES
- A61—MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
- A61P—SPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
- A61P43/00—Drugs for specific purposes, not provided for in groups A61P1/00-A61P41/00
Definitions
- This invention relates to novel macrolide compounds that are useful as antibacterial and antiprotozoal agents in mammals, including man, as well as in fish and birds.
- This invention also relates to methods of preparing the novel compounds and pharmaceutical compositions containing the novel compounds.
- the present invention includes methods of treating bacterial and protozoal infections through the administration of the novel compounds to mammals, fish and birds requiring such treatment.
- Macrolide antibiotics are known to be useful in the treatment of a broad spectrum of bacterial and protozoal infections in mammals (including humans), fish and birds.
- Various derivatives of erythromycin A that are useful as antibiotic agents are referred to in U.S. patent application serial No. 60/049,349, filed Jun. 11, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 601046,150, filed May 9, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/063,676, filed Oct. 29, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/087,798, filed Jun. 3, 1998; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/054,866, filed Aug. 6, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/063,161, filed Oct. 29, 1997; U.S.
- the present invention relates to novel derivatives of erythromycin that are useful as antibacterial and antiprotozoal agents in mammals (including humans), fish and birds.
- the compounds of the present invention include novel 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives prepared by chemical modification of 13-methyl erythromycins, which have been produced by direct fermentation.
- the invention further relates to methods for preparing the claimed compounds, pharmaceutical compositions containing such compounds and methods of treatment with such compounds and compositions.
- A is H or halogen
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH(NR 8 R 9 )—, —CHR 8 NR 9 —, —NR 9 CHR 8 —, —C( ⁇ NR 8 )— and —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1;
- Y is selected from CH 2 , C(O), CHF, CF 2 , C ⁇ C(R a R b ), CHSR 7 , CHR 7 , C ⁇ S, —C( ⁇ NR 8 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 ), CH(OR 8 ), CH(OC(O)R 8 ), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR 8 R 9 ), CH(O(CR a R b ) n Ar), CH(OC(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar), CH(OC(O)CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar), CH(OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 ), CH(OC(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar), CH(OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 ), CH(OC(O)NR 8 (CR a R b
- R 1 and R 2 can be taken separately or together;
- R 1 is independently selected from OR 8 , OC(O)R 8 , OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 C(O)R 8 , NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , O(CR a R b ) n Ar, S(CR a R b ) n Ar and N(CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- R 2 is independently selected from OR 8 , O-mesyl, O-tosyl, OC(O)R 8 , OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 C(O)R 8 , NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , O(CR a R b ) n Ar, S(CR a R b ) n Ar and NH(CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- each of R a and R b is independently selected from H, halo and a C 1 -C 6 alkyl;
- R a and R b together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- n is alkylene, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, uninterrupted or interrupted by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 1 and R 2 taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- B 1 is selected from O, (CR aa R bb ) m , SO 2 , O and NR 7 , wherein m is 0 or 1;
- Z is selected from (CR aa R bb ) m , C(O), C(NR aa ), P-OR aa , P(O)OR aa , P(O)NR aa R bb , Si(R c R d ), SO, SO 2 , (CR aa R bb ) m CO and CO(CR aa R bb ) m , wherein m is 1 or 2;
- R c and R d are independently selected from a C 1 -C 8 alkyl, a C 6 -C 10 aryl and a C 4 -C 10 heterocyclic;
- R aa and R bb are independently selected from H and a C 1 -C 6 alkyl
- R aa and R bb together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- B 1 and R 6 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring wherein one or two carbons of said ring are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 ) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- B 1 when B 1 is NR 7 , B 1 and R 6 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form —N ⁇ C(R 7 )(R a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- R 1 , R 2 and X can be taken together;
- R 1 , R 2 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional two rings having one of the following structures:
- each of D, E, F and G is independently selected from H, halo, a C 1 -C 12 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl and CH 2 (R a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- D and E or F and G together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- each of J, J 1 and K is independently selected from C(O)R 8 , C(O)NR 8 R 9 , C(O)OR 8 , (CR a R b ) n Ar, S(CR a R b ) n Ar and NH(CR a R b ) n Ar; wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- each of L, M, Q and V is independently selected from the group S substituents
- one or two carbons of the phenyl ring in which L, M, Q and V are attached can be replaced with nitrogen;
- R 1 and X can be taken together;
- R 1 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- R 2 and X can be taken together;
- R 2 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- R 3 is OR 10 ;
- R 3 and X can be taken together;
- R 3 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- R 3 and Y can be taken together;
- R 3 and Y taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- R 4 is selected from H, a C(O)(C 1 -C 18 )alkyl, C(O)Ar, a OC(O)(C 1 -C 18 )alkyl and OC(O)Ar, wherein the alkyl moieties of the foregoing R 4 groups are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 5 is selected from H, halo, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar, (CR a R b ) n Ar, OR 8 , O(CO)R 8 , OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 C(O)R 8 , NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , O(CR a R b ) n Ar, S(CR a R b ) n Ar and NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an interger ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —
- R 5 and Y can be taken together;
- R 5 and Y taken with the intervening atoms form the following structure:
- R 6 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 12 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl and CH 2 (R a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- each of R 7 , R 8 and R 9 is independently selected from H and a C 1 -C 12 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 ) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 8 and R 9 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, in which one or two carbons are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 ) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 10 is selected from a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar and (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R 10 is not unsubstituted methyl;
- R 11 is H or OCH 3 ;
- R 12 and R 13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C( ⁇ NR 8 )— or —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 );
- R 12 and R 13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, wherein one or two carbons of said ring are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 ) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 12 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar and (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 13 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, OR 8 , OC(O)R 8 , OC(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 (CO
- each of R 14 and R 15 is independently selected from H, a C 1 -C 12 alkyl, an aryl-substituted C 1 -C 12 alkyl and a heteroaryl-substituted C 1 -C 12 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 ) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 14 and R 15 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, in which one or two carbons are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 17 is a C 1 -C 20 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R 17 is not unsubstituted ethyl;
- R 18 is selected from the group consisting of an aryl, a substituted aryl, a heteroaryl, a substituted heteroaryl and a heterocycloalkyl;
- each of R 19 and R 20 is independently selected from the group consisting of a C 1 -C 12 alkenyl, a C 1 -C 12 alkynyl, an aryl, a C 3 -C 8 cycloalkyl, a heterocycloalkyl and a heteroaryl, wherein said alkenyl, alkynyl, aryl, cycloalkyl, heterocycloalkyl and heteroaryl are substituted or unsubstituted;
- R 19 and R 20 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered heterocycloalkyl ring that may be substituted with one or more substituents independently selected from the group consisting of halogen, hydroxy, a C 1 -C 3 alkoxy, a C 1 -C 3 alkoxy-C 1 -C 3 alkoxy, oxo, a C 1 -C 3 alkyl, a halo-C 1 -C 3 alkyl and a C 1 -C 3 alkoxy-C 1 -C 3 alkyl;
- each Ar is independently a 4- to 10-membered heterocyclic or a C 6 -C 10 aryl, wherein said heterocyclic and aryl groups are optionally substituted by one or more substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- the present invention relates to compounds of formula 1A
- R f is selected from H, a —C(O)-imidazolyl, a C 1 -C 12 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, a —C(O)(C 1 -C 18 )alkyl, a —C(O)O(C 1 -C 18 )alkyl, —C(O)NR 8 R 9 and CH 2 (R a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)—and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 3 is selected from H and OR 10 ;
- R 10 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar and (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R 10 is not unsubstituted methyl; and
- A, Y, R 4 , R 5 , R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 11 , R 12 , R 13 , R 14 , R 15 , R 17 , R 18 , R 19 , R 20 , R a , R b , Ar and the group S substituents are defined as for formula 1.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein A is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH(NH 2 )—, —CH 2 NR 9 —, —NR 9 CH 2 — and —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1.
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH(NH 2 )—, —CH 2 NR 9 —, —NR 9 CH 2 — and —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein X is selected from —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —C( ⁇ N—OH)—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 CH 2 OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1.
- all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 2 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH and R 2 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH, R 2 is OH, A is H and X is selected from —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —C( ⁇ N—OH)—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 CH 2 OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1.
- all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH, R 2 is OH, A is F and X is selected from —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —C( ⁇ N—OH)—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 CH 2 OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1.
- all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- Z is CH 2 or C( ⁇ O); B 1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH 2 ; and R 6 is (CH 2 ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having the following structure:
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and X taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having the following structure:
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- Z is CH 2 or C( ⁇ O); B 1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH 2 ; and R 6 is (CH 2 ) 3 Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
- B 1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH 2 ; and R 6 is (CH 2 ) 3 Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 taken with the intervening atoms form an additional ring having one of the following structures:
- Z is CH 2 or C( ⁇ O);
- B 1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH 2 ;
- R 6 is (CH 2 ) 3 Ar; and
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl and 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 3 is selected from an O(C 1 -C 4 )alkyl, OCH 2 CH ⁇ CH—Ar and O(CH 2 ) n Ar. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is selected from CH 2 , C(O), C ⁇ S, CH(OR 8 ), CH(OC(O)R 8 ), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR 8 R 9 ) and CH(O(CR a R b ) n Ar), wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein Y has the following structure:
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein Y has the following structure:
- R 12 is H and R 13 is selected from OR 8 , OC(O)R 8 , O(CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 (CO)R 8 , NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 C(O)OR 8 , O(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b )
- R 13 is OH and R 12 is selected from CH 2 N 3 , CH 2 NH 2 , CH 2 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 NR 8 C(O)R 8 , CH 2 NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 C(O)OR 8 , CH 2 O(CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 S(CR a R b ) n Ar and CH 2 NH(CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- R 13 is OH and R 12 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar and (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- or —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- R 12 and R 13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )— or —C( ⁇ N—R 8 )—, and all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 14 and R 15 together with the carbon to which they are attached form the following structure:
- each of n and m is independently an integer from 1 to 6; and R 16 is selected from R 8 , C(O)R 8 , C(O)Ar, C(O)OR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)NR 8 R 9 , C(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , C(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar and (CR a R b ) n n
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 4 is H or Ac. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 5 is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein A is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R f is selected from H, a —C(O)-imidazolyl, —C(O)OR 8 , —C(O)(CH 2 ) n Ar, —C(O)NR 8 R 9 and —C(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 3 is selected from OH, an O(C 2 -C 4 )alkyl, OCH 2 CH ⁇ CHAr and O(CH 2 ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein Y is selected from CH 2 , C(O), C ⁇ S, CH(OR 8 ), CH(OC(O)R 8 ), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR 8 R 9 ) and CH(O(CR a R b ) n Ar), wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein Y has the following structure:
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein Y has the following structure:
- R 12 is H and R 13 is selected from OR 8 , OC(O)R 8 , O(CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , OC(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, OC(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 (CO)R 8 , NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , NR 8 C(O)OR 8 , O(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, S(Cr a R b )
- R 13 is OH and R 12 is selected from CH 2 N 3 , CH 2 NH 2 , CH 2 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar CH 2 NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 NR 8 C(O)R 8 , CH 2 NR 8 C(O)NR 8 R 9 , CH 2 NR 8 C(O)OR 8 , CH 2 O(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (Cr a R b ) n Ar, CH 2 S(CR a R b ) n Ar and CH 2 NH(CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all
- R 13 is OH and R 12 is selected from H, a C 1 -C 10 alkyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkenyl, a C 3 -C 10 alkynyl, —C(R a R b )—C(R a ) ⁇ C(R b )—Ar and (CR a R b ) n Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2 —, a —N(C 1 -C 6 )alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- R 12 and R 13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )— or —C( ⁇ N—R 8 )—, and all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 14 and R 15 together with the carbon to which they are attached form the following structure:
- each of n and m is independently an integer from 1 to 6, and R 16 is selected from R 8 , C(O)R 8 , C(O)Ar, C(O)OR 8 , (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)(CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)(CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)NR 8 R 9 , C(O)NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , C(O)NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, C(O)NR 8 NR 8 (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar, NR 8 NR 8 R 9 , (CR a R b ) n NR 8 (CR a R b ) n Ar and (CR a R b ) n n
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 4 is H or Ac. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 5 is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- Examples of preferred compounds of this invention include the following compounds:
- O-cladinose represents the following structure:
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 NMe—, —NHCH 2 —, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —CH(NH 2 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 O(CH 2 ) 2 OMe)—; and
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH 3 , CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-pyridyl) and CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-quinolyl);
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 NMe—, —NHCH 2 —, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —CH(NH 2 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 O(CH 2 ) 2 OMe)—;
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH 3 , CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-pyridyl) and CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-quinolyl);
- R 8 is selected from NH(CH 2 ) 2 N(Me)CH 2 Ar, NH(CH 2 ) 2 NHCH 2 Ar, O(CH 2 )N(Me)CH 2 Ar and O(CH 2 ) 2 NHCH 2 Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, 2-methoxyphenyl, 4-methoxyphenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 NMe—, —NHCH 2 —, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —CH(NH 2 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 O(CH 2 ) 2 OMe)—;
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH 3 , CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(5quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(5quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-pyridyl) and CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-quinolyl);
- R 12 is selected from H, Me, Et, propyl, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, CH 2 N 3 , CH 2 NH 2 , CH 2 NHMe, CH 2 NHEt, CH 2 NH-n-pr, CH 2 NH-cyclopropyl, CH 2 NH-iso-propyl, CH 2 NH(CH 2 ) 2 NH 2 , CH 2 NH(CH 2 ) 2 NHCH 2 Ar and CH 2 NH(CH 2 ) 2 N(Me)CH 2 Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, 2-methoxyphenyl, 4-methoxyphenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH 3 , CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH 2 -(4-pyridyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(5-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH ⁇ CH-(8-quinolyl), CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-pyridyl) and CH 2 CH 2 NHCH 2 -(4-quinolyl);
- R 5 is H or F
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 NMe—, —NHCH 2 —, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —CH(NH 2 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 O(CH 2 ) 2 OMe)—;
- B 1 is selected from NH, O and CH 2 ;
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2 NH—, —CH 2 NMe—, —NHCH 2 —, —N(Me)CH 2 —, —CH(NH 2 )—, —C( ⁇ N—OMe)— and —C( ⁇ N—OCH 2 O(CH 2 ) 2 OMe)—;
- R 5 is H or F
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F
- R 5 is H or F
- D is selected from CH 2 Ar, CH 2 NH 2 , CH 2 NHCH 2 Ar, CH 2 OH, (CH 2 ) 3 Ar, CH 2 OCH 2 Ar, CH 2 SCH 2 Ar, CH 2 NHCH 2 Ar, CH 2 N(Me)CH 2 Ar and CH 2 OCH 2 —Ar; and
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- R 16 is selected from H, Me, Et, n-propyl, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, C(O)Me, C(O)Ar, C(O)OMe, (CH 2 ) 3 Ar, (CH 2 ) 2 Ar, (CH 2 ) 2 NHCH 2 Ar and (CH 2 ) 2 N(Me)CH 2 Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- R f is H or —C(O)-imidazolyl
- A is H or F
- R 3 is selected from OH, OEt, O-cyclopropyl and O-n-propyl
- R 4 is selected from H, Ac and trimethylsilyl
- R 5 is H or F
- Y is selected from CH(O-cladinose), CH(O-(4′′-O-acetyl)-cladinose), CH(OH), C ⁇ O and CH(OAc).
- Certain compounds of formulas 1 and 1A may contain one or more asymmetric carbons and may therefore exist in different isomeric forms.
- This invention includes all pure individual enantiomers and individual diastereomers of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and mixtures comprising any combination of these isomers.
- Each stereogenic carbon may be of the R or S configuration.
- the invention includes both the R and S configurations of C-2, C-8, C-9, C-10 and C-11 of the macrolide ring of formula 1.
- the invention further includes all E and Z configurations of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and mixtures thereof.
- the compounds of this invention may be modified by appropriate functionalities to enhance selective biological properties.
- This invention includes all pharmaceutically acceptable derivatives or prodrugs of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A.
- This invention also includes all pharmaceutically acceptable salts of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A.
- the present invention includes all isotopically labelled forms of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts thereof. Such isotopically labelled compounds are useful as research or diagnostic tools.
- the invention also relates to processes for preparing a compound of formula 1.
- One such process comprises treating a compound of formula 3, wherein R 8 is hydrogen, with mesyl chloride or mesyl chloride and a base such as DBU, pyridine or triethylamine.
- Another process comprises treating a compound of formula 50 with an appropriate nucleophile in the presence of an acid to open the epoxide moiety at the 4′′ position.
- Another process comprises treating a compound of formula 63 with R 6 B 1 NH 2 or NH 2 C(D)(E)C(F)(G)NH 2 .
- Another process comprises treating a compound of formula 69 with C(D)(E)(O) in the presence of an acid such as acetic acid.
- Another process comprises treating a compound of formula 82 with an azide reagent such as TMS-N 3 in the presence of a Lewis acid.
- Another process comprises treating a compound of formula 87 with R 14 R 15 C(O) in the presence of an acid such as para-toluenesulfonic acid.
- the present invention also relates to a pharmaceutical composition for the treatment of a bacterial or protozoal infection, or a disorder related to a bacterial or protozoal infection.
- This pharmaceutical composition comprises a therapeutically effective amount of a compound of formula 1 or 1A, or a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, prodrug or solvate thereof, and a pharmaceutically acceptable carrier or diluent.
- the pharmaceutical composition may comprise one or more additional agents having an antibiotic effect or other therapeutic or prophylactic effect.
- the present invention further includes a method of treating a bacterial infection or a protozoal infection, or a disorder related to a bacterial or protozoal infection, in humans, other mammals, fish or birds in need of such treatment.
- the methods of the present invention comprise administering to said human, other mammal, fish or bird a therapeutically effective amount of a compound of formula 1 or 1A, a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, prodrug or solvate thereof, or a pharmaceutical composition comprising the compound as defined above.
- This invention contemplates treatment methods in which the compounds of the present invention are administered either as a single agent or in combination with other therapeutic agents.
- Patients that can be treated with the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, pharmaceutically acceptable salts, solvates and prodrugs thereof, or pharmaceutical compositions comprising the compounds include mammals (particularly humans), fish and birds suffering from infections caused by various microorganisms, including Gram-positive and Gram-negative bacteria.
- infection(s) includes “bacterial infection(s)”, “protozoal infection(s)” and “disorders related to bacterial infections or protozoal infections”. These terms include bacterial infections and protozoal infections that occur in mammals, fish and birds, as well as disorders related to bacterial infections or protozoal infections that may be treated or prevented by administering the compounds of the present invention.
- Such bacterial infections, protozoal infections and disorders related to such bacterial and protozoal infections include the following: pneumonia, otitis media, sinusitus, bronchitis, tonsillitis and mastoiditis related to infection by Streptococcus pneumoniae, Haemophilus influenzae, Moraxella catarrhalis, Staphylococcus aureus, Enterococcus faecalis, E. faecium, E. casselflavus, S. epidermidis, S.
- haemolyticus or Peptostreptococcus spp. pharyngitis, rheumatic fever and glomerulonephritis related to infection by Streptococcus pyogenes , Groups C and G streptococci, Clostridium diptheriae, Corynebacterium diphtheriae or Actinobacillus haemolyticum; respiratory tract infections related to infection by Mycoplasma pneumoniae, Legionella pneumophila, Streptococcus pneumoniae, Haemophilus influenzae or Chlamydia pneumoniae; blood and tissue infections, including endocarditis and osteomyelitis, caused by S. aureus, S. haemolyticus, E.
- E. faecalis E. faecium or E. durans , including strains resistant to known antibacterials such as, but not limited to, beta-lactams, vancomycin, aminoglycosides, quinolones, chloramphenicol, tetracylines and macrolides; uncomplicated skin and soft tissue infections and abscesses, and puerperal fever related to infection by Staphylococcus aureus , coagulase-positive staphylococci (i.e., S. epidermidis, S.
- known antibacterials such as, but not limited to, beta-lactams, vancomycin, aminoglycosides, quinolones, chloramphenicol, tetracylines and macrolides
- uncomplicated skin and soft tissue infections and abscesses uncomplicated skin and soft tissue infections and abscesses
- puerperal fever related to infection by Staphylococcus aureus coagulase
- Streptococcus pyogenes Streptococcus agalactiae
- Streptococcal groups C-F minute-colony streptococci
- viridans streptococci Corynebacterium minutissimum
- Bartonella henselae uncomplicated acute urinary tract infections related to infection by Staphylococcus aureus, Staphylococcus saprophyticus, coagulase-negative staphylococcal species or Enterococcus spp.; urethritis and cervicitis; sexually transmitted diseases related to infection by Chlamydia trachomatis, Haemophilus ducreyi, Treponema pallidum, Ureaplasma urealyticum or Neiserria gonorrheae; toxin diseases related to infection by S.
- aureus food poisoning and toxic shock syndrome
- Groups A, B, and C streptococci ulcers related to infection by Helicobacter pylori ; systemic febrile syndromes related to infection by Borrelia recurrentis; Lyme disease related to infection by Borrelia burgdorferi ; conjunctivitis, keratitis and dacrocystitis related to infection by Chlamydia trachomatis, Neisseria gonorrhoeae, S. aureus, S. pneumoniae, S. pyogenes, H.
- MAC Mycobacterium avium complex
- Bacterial infections and protozoal infections, and disorders related to such infections, that may be treated or prevented in animals include the following: bovine respiratory disease related to infection by P. haemolytica, P.
- cow enteric disease related to infection by E. coli or protozoa i.e., coccidia, cryptosporidia, etc.
- coli Lawsonia intracellularis , Salmonella or Serpulina hyodysinteriae ; cow footrot related to infection by Fusobacterium spp.; cow metritis related to infection by E. coli ; cow hairy warts related to infection by Fusobacterium necrophorum or Bacteroides nodosus; cow pink-eye related to infection by Moraxella bovis; cow premature abortion related to infection by protozoa (i.e. neosporium); urinary tract infection in dogs and cats related to infection by E. coli; skin and soft tissue infections in dogs and cats related to infection by S. epidermidis, S. intermedius, coagulase neg. Staphylococcus or P.
- multocida and dental or mouth infections in dogs and cats related to infection by Alcaligenes spp., Bacteroides spp., Clostridium spp., Enterobacter spp., Eubacterium, Peptostreptococcus, Porphyromonas or Prevotella.
- Other bacterial infections, protozoal infections and disorders related to bacterial or protozoal infections that may be treated or prevented in accord with the method of the present invention are referred to in J. P. Sanford et al., “The Sanford Guide To Antimicrobial Therapy,” 26th Edition (Antimicrobial Therapy, Inc., 1996).
- the present invention comprises novel compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof that are antibacterial and/or antiprotozoal agents.
- the present invention further comprises methods of preparing the claimed compounds, pharmaceutical compositions comprising the compounds, and methods of treatment using the compounds and compositions.
- a wavy line indicates that the stereochemistry at the chiral center to which the wavy line is connected is either an R or an S configuration where the wavy line is connected to a carbon atom.
- the wavy lines at positions 2, 8, 10 and 11 of the macrolide ring indicate that these carbons have either an R or an S configuration.
- a wavy line connected to an oxime nitrogen indicates that the oxime geometry is in an E or Z configuration.
- halo refers to fluoro, chloro, bromo or iodo. Preferred halo groups are fluoro, chloro and bromo.
- alkyl includes saturated monovalent hydrocarbon radicals having straight, cyclic or branched moieties, or a combination of the foregoing moieties.
- Said alkyl group may include one or two double or triple bonds.
- cycloalkyls at least three carbon atoms are required in said alkyl group.
- Said cycloalkyls may include mono- or polycyclic alkyl radicals.
- alkyl radicals include, but are not limited to, methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, isobutyl, sec-butyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isoamyl, n-hexyl, cyclohexyl, adamantyl, norbornyl and the like.
- alkenyl includes straight-chain or branched-chain mono- or poly-unsaturated aliphatic hydrocarbon radicals containing at least one carbon-carbon double bond.
- alkenyl radicals include, but are not limited to, ethenyl, E- and Z-propenyl, isopropenyl, E- and Z-butenyl, E- and Z-isobutenyl, E- and Z-pentenyl, E- and Z-hexenyl, E,E-, E,Z-, Z,E- and Z,Z-hexadienyl and the like.
- alkynyl includes straight-chain or branched-chain mono- or poly-unsaturated aliphatic hydrocarbon radicals containing at least one carbon-carbon triple bond.
- alkynyl radicals include, but are not limited to, ethynyl, E- and Z-propynyl, isopropynyl, E- and Z-butynyl, E- and Z-isobutynyl, E- and Z-pentynyl, E- and Z-hexynyl and the like.
- alkoxy includes alkyl ether radicals, wherein the term “alkyl” is as defined above.
- suitable alkyl ether radicals include, but are not limited to, methoxy, ethoxy, n-propoxy, isopropoxy, n-butoxy, isobutoxy, sec-butoxy, tert-butoxy and the like.
- alkanoyl as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes —C(O)-alkyl groups wherein “alkyl” is as defined above.
- aryl includes an organic radical derived from an aromatic hydrocarbon by the removal of one hydrogen.
- aryl radicals include, but are not limited to, phenyl, naphthyl, indenyl, indanyl, azulenyl, fluorenyl, anthracenyl and the like.
- substituted refers to the replacement of one or more hydrogen radicals in a given structure with the radical of a specified substituent.
- substituents may be either the same or different at every position. In some cases, two positions in a given structure may be substituted with one shared substituent. Most preferred substituents are those that enhance antibacterial or antiprotozoal activity.
- Non-aromatic heterocyclic groups include groups having only 3 atoms in their ring system, but aromatic heterocyclic groups must have at least 5 atoms in their ring system.
- the heterocyclic groups include benzo-fused ring systems and ring systems substituted with one or more oxo moieties.
- An example of a 4-membered heterocyclic group is azetidinyl (derived from azetidine).
- An example of a 5-membered heterocyclic group is thiazolyl, and an example of a 10-membered heterocyclic group is quinolinyl.
- Examples of non-aromatic heterocyclic groups are pyrrolidinyl, tetrahydrofuranyl, tetrahydrothienyl, tetrahydropyranyl, tetrahydrothiopyranyl, piperidino, morpholino, thiomorpholino, thioxanyl, piperazinyl, azetidinyl, oxetanyl, thietanyl, homopiperidinyl, oxepanyl, thiepanyl, oxazepinyl, diazepinyl, thiazepinyl, 1,2,3,6-tetrahydropyridinyl, 2-pyrrolinyl, 3-pyrrolinyl, indolinyl, 2H-pyranyl, 4H-pyrany
- aromatic heterocyclic groups are pyridinyl, imidazolyl, pyrimidinyl, pyrazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazinyl, tetrazolyl, furyl, thienyl, isoxazolyl, thiazolyl, oxazolyl, isothiazolyl, pyrrolyl, quinolinyl, isoquinolinyl, indolyl, benzimidazolyl, benzofuranyl, cinnolinyl, indazolyl, indolizinyl, phthalazinyl, pyridazinyl, triazinyl, isoindolyl, pteridinyl, purinyl, oxadiazolyl, thiadiazolyl, furazanyl, benzofurazanyl, benzothiophenyl, benzothiazolyl, benzoxazolyl, quinazolinyl, quinox
- a group derived from pyrrole may be C-attached or N-attached where such is possible.
- a group derived from pyrrole may be pyrrol-1-yl (N-attached) or pyrrol-3-yl (C-attached).
- protecting group refers to a suitable chemical group that may be attached to a functional group and removed at a later stage to reveal the intact functional group. Examples of suitable protecting groups for various functional groups are described in T. W. Greene and P. G. M Wuts, Protective Groups in Organic Synthesis, 2 d Ed. , John Wiley and Sons (1991); L. Fieser and M. Fieser, Fieser and Fieser's Reagents for Organic Synthesis , John Wiley and Sons (1994); and L. Paquette, ed. Encyclodedia of Reagents for Organic Synthesis , John Wiley and Sons (1995).
- the term “acid” refers to an electron pair acceptor.
- base refers to an electron pair donor
- terapéuticaally effective amount refers to an amount effective in treating or ameliorating a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, or a disorder involving a bacterial or protozoal infection, in a patient, either as monotherapy or in combination with other agents.
- treating refers to the alleviation of symptoms of a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, or a particular disorder involving a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, in a patient, or the improvement of an ascertainable measurement associated with such a disorder.
- patient refers to mammals (including humans), fish and birds suffering from a bacterial infection or a protozoal infection, or a disorder involving a bacterial infection or protozoal infection.
- treating means reversing, alleviating, inhibiting the progress of, or preventing the disorder or condition to which such term applies, or one or more symptoms of such disorder or condition.
- treatment refers to the act of treating as “treating” is defined immediately above.
- pharmaceutically acceptable carrier refers to a carrier that may be administered to a patient together with a compound of this invention.
- the carrier does not destroy the pharmacological activity of the compound and is nontoxic when administered in doses sufficient to deliver a therapeutic amount of the compound.
- the compounds of this invention including the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, are defined to include pharmaceutically acceptable derivatives or prodrugs thereof.
- a “pharmaceutically acceptable derivative or prodrug” means any pharmaceutically acceptable salt, ester, salt of an ester or other derivative of a compound of this invention that, upon administration to a recipient, is capable of providing (directly or indirectly) a compound of this invention or a metabolite or residue thereof.
- Particularly favored derivatives and prodrugs are those that increase the bioavailability of the compounds of this invention when such compounds are administered to a patient (e.g., by allowing an orally administered compound to be more readily absorbed into the blood), enhance delivery of the parent compound to a given biological compartment, increase solubility to allow administration by injection, alter metabolism or alter rate of excretion.
- Compounds of formulas 1 and 1A can be converted into prodrugs through, for example, free amino, amido, hydroxy or carboxylic groups.
- prodrugs include compounds wherein an amino acid residue, or a polypeptide chain of two or more (e.g., two, three or four) amino acid residues is covalently joined through an amide or ester bond to a free amino, hydroxy or carboxylic acid group of a compound of formula 1 or 1A.
- amino acid residues include but are not limited to the 20 naturally occurring amino acids commonly designated by three letter symbols and also include 4-hydroxyproline, hydroxylysine, demosine, isodemosine, 3-methylhistidine, norvalin, beta-alanine, gamma-aminobutyric acid, citrulline homocysteine, homoserine, ornithine and methionine sulfone.
- prodrugs can be derivatized as amides or alkyl esters.
- the amide and ester moieties may incorporate groups including but not limited to ether, amine and carboxylic acid functionalities.
- Free hydroxy groups may be derivatized using groups including but not limited to hemisuccinates, phosphate esters, dimethylaminoacetates and phosphoryloxymethyloxycarbonyls, as outlined in D. Fleisher et al., Advanced Drug Delivery Reviews, vol. 19, p. 115 (1996).
- Carbamate prodrugs of hydroxy and amino groups are also included, as are carbonate prodrugs and sulfate esters of hydroxy groups.
- the compounds of this invention also include pharmaceutically acceptable salts of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A.
- pharmaceutically acceptable salt(s) includes salts of acidic or basic groups that may be present in the compounds of the present invention.
- the compounds of the present invention that are basic in nature are capable of forming a wide variety of salts with various inorganic and organic acids.
- the acids that may be used to prepare pharmaceutically acceptable acid addition salts of such basic compounds of formulas 1 and 1A are those that form non-toxic acid addition salts, i.e., salts containing pharmacologically acceptable anions, such as the hydrochloride, hydrobromide, hydroiodide, nitrate, sulfate, bisulfate, phosphate, acid phosphate, isonicotinate, acetate, lactate, salicylate, citrate, acid citrate, tartrate, pantothenate, bitartrate, ascorbate, succinate, maleate, gentisinate, fumarate, gluconate, glucuronate, saccharate, formate, benzoate, glutamate, methanesulfonate, ethanesulfonate, benzenesulfonate, p-tolu
- Those compounds of the present invention that are acidic in nature are capable of forming base salts with various pharmacologically acceptable cations.
- Examples of such salts include the alkali metal or alkaline earth metal salts and, particularly, the calcium, magnesium, sodium and potassium salts of the compounds of the present invention.
- the subject invention also includes isotopically-labelled compounds and pharmaceutically acceptable salts thereof that are identical to those recited in formulas 1 and 1A, but for the fact that one or more atoms are replaced by an atom having an atomic mass or mass number different from the atomic mass or mass number usually found in nature.
- isotopes that can be incorporated into compounds of this invention include isotopes of hydrogen, carbon, nitrogen, oxygen, phosphorous, fluorine and chlorine, such as 2 H, 3 H, 13 C, 14 C, 15 N, 18 O, 17 O, 35 S, 18 F and 36 Cl, respectively.
- Compounds of the present invention, prodrugs thereof, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts of said compounds or of said prodrugs that contain the aforementioned isotopes and/or other isotopes of other atoms are within the scope of this invention.
- Certain isotopically labelled compounds of the present invention, such as those into which radioactive isotopes such as 3 H and 14 C are incorporated, are useful in drug and/or substrate tissue distribution assays. Tritiated, i.e., 3 H, and carbon-14, i.e., 14 C, isotopes are particularly preferred for their ease of preparation and detectability.
- Isotopically labelled compounds of formulas 1 and 1A of this invention and prodrugs thereof can generally be prepared by carrying out the procedures disclosed in the Schemes and/or in the Examples below and substituting a readily available isotopically labelled reagent for a non-isotopically labelled reagent.
- starting materials useful for the preparation of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A can be prepared using methods such as those described in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15, 1999; and WO 99/35157, published Jul. 15, 1999; all of which are incorporated herein by reference in their entirety.
- starting materials may be prepared by fermenting suitable organisms. Production of such starting materials involves the manipulation of polyketide biosynthetic genes or portions of them, which may be derived from different polyketide biosynthetic gene clusters.
- Polyketides are a large and structurally diverse class of natural products that includes many compounds possessing antibiotic or other pharmacological properties, such as erythromycin, tetracyclines, rapamycin, avermectin, polyether ionophores and FK506.
- antibiotic or other pharmacological properties such as erythromycin, tetracyclines, rapamycin, avermectin, polyether ionophores and FK506.
- polyketides are abundantly produced by Streptomyces and related actinomycete bacteria. They are synthesized by the repeated stepwise condensation of acylthioesters in a manner analogous to that of fatty-acid biosynthesis.
- polyketide synthases The biosynthesis of polyketides is initiated by a group of chain-forming enzymes known as polyketide synthases.
- PKS polyketide synthase
- Type I PKS's a different set or “module” of enzymes is responsible for each cycle of polyketide chain extension (Cortes, J. et al., Nature , vol. 348, pp. 176-178 (1990); Donadio, S. et al., Science , vol. 252, pp.
- extension module refers to the set of contiguous domains, from a ketoacyl-ACP synthase (“AKS”) domain to the next acyl carrier protein (“ACP”) domain, that accomplishes one cycle of polyketide chain extension.
- ACP acyl carrier protein
- loading module is used to refer to any group of contiguous domains that accomplishes the loading of the starter unit onto the PKS, rendering it available to the ⁇ ketoacylsynthase (“KS”) domain of the first extension module.
- the length of the polyketide formed has been altered, in the case of erythromycin biosynthesis, through specific relocation of the enzymatic domain of the erythromycin-producing PKS that contains the chain-releasing thioesterase/cyclase activity (Cortés et al., Science , vol. 268, pp. 1487-1489 (1995); Kao, C. M. et al., J. Am. Chem. Soc., vol. 117, pp. 9105-9106 (1995)).
- the Type I PKS gene assembly encodes a loading module that is followed by extension modules.
- the genes for the erythromycin-producing PKS (known as 6-deoxyerythronolide B synthase, “DEBS”) contain three open reading frames that encode the DEBS polypeptides. The genes are organized in six repeated units designated modules.
- the first open reading frame encodes the first multi-enzyme or cassette (DEBS1), which consists of three modules: the loading module and two extension modules (modules 1 and 2).
- the loading module comprises an AT and an ACP.
- the DEBS loading module has a slightly broader specificity than propionate only.
- acetate starter units are used both in vitro and in vivo, when the PKS containing this loading module is part of a PKS that is expressed either in the natural host for erythromycin production, Saccharopolyspora erythraea (see, for example, Cortés, J. et al., Science , vol. 268, pp. 1487-1489 (1995)), or in a heterologous host such as Saccharopolyspora coelicolor (Kao, C. M. et al., J. Am. Chem. Soc. , vol. 116, pp.
- the outcome of the competition between acetate and propionate starter units is influenced by the respective intracellular concentrations of propionyl-CoA and acetyl-CoA prevailing in the host cell used (see, for example, Kao, C. M. et al., Science , vol. 265, pp. 509-512 (1994); Pereda, A. et al., Microbiology, vol. 144, pp. 543-553 (1995)). It also depends upon the level of expression of the host PKS. As disclosed for example in International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, when recombinant DEBS or another hybrid PKS containing the DEBS loading module is overexpressed in S. erythraea , the products are generally mixtures whose components differ only in the presence of either an acetate or a propionate starter unit.
- DNA sequences have also been disclosed for several Type I PKS gene clusters that govern the production of 16-membered macrolide polyketides, including the tylosin PKS from Streptomyces fradiae (EP 0 791 655 A2), the niddamycin PKS from Streptomyces caelestis (Kavakas, S. J. et al., J. Bacteriol. , vol. 179, pp. 7515-7522 (1998)) and the spiramycin PKS from Streptomyces ambofaciens (EP 0 791 655 A2).
- the loading modules of these PKS gene clusters differ from the loading modules of DEBS and of the avermectin PKS in that they include a domain resembling the KS domains of the extension modules in addition to the usual AT domain and ACP.
- the additional N-terminal KS-like domain has been named KSq, because it differs in each case from an extension KS by possessing a glutamine residue (Q in single letter notation) in place of the active site cysteine residue essential for ⁇ -ketoacyl-ACP synthase activity.
- ATq is used here simply to distinguish the AT domains found immediately C-terminal of KSq from extension AT's; the label has no other significance.
- the PKS's for certain 14-membered macrolides (particularly, the oleandomycin PKS from Streptomyces antibioticus) and also the PKS's for certain polyether ionophore polyketides (particularly, the putative monensin PKS from Streptomyces cinnamonensis), similarly possess a loading domain comprising a KSq domain, an ATq domain and an ACP.
- the KSq domain of the tylosin PKS and the associated ATq domain together are responsible for the highly specific production of propionate starter units. That is, the ATq is specific for the loading of methylmalonyl-CoA, and the KSq is responsible for the highly specific decarboxylation of the enzyme-bound methylmalonate unit to form a propionate unit.
- This proprionate unit is attached to the ACP domain of the loading module and appropriately placed to be transferred to the KS of extension module 1 for the initiation of chain extension.
- the ATq and the adjacent KSq of the spiramycin and niddamycin PKS's are responsible for the specific loading of malonate units and for their subsequent specific decarboxylation to provide acetate starter units for polyketide chain extension.
- the second class of PKS includes the synthases for aromatic compounds.
- Type II PKS's contain a single set of enzymatic activities for chain extension, and these are re-used as appropriate in successive cycles (Bibb, M. J. et al., EMBO J., vol. 8, pp. 2727-2736 (1989); Sherman, D. H. et al., EMBO J., vol. 8, pp. 2717-2725 (1989); Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., J. Biol. Chem., vol. 267, pp. 19278-19290 (1992)).
- the “extender” units for the Type II PKS's are usually acetate units.
- the minimal number of domains required for polyketide chain extension on a Type II PKS when expressed in a S. coelicolor host cell has been defined, as for example in International Application WO 95/08548, as containing the following three polypeptides, which are products of the actI genes: (1) a KS; (2) a polypeptide termed the CLF, with end-to-end amino acid sequence similarity to the KS, but in which the essential active-site residue of the KS, a cysteine residue, is substituted either by a glutamine residue or, in the case of the PKS for a spore pigment such as the whiE gene product (Chater, K. F. and Davis, N. K., Mol. Microbiol., vol. 4, pp. 1679-1691 (1990)), by a glutamic acid residue; and (3) an ACP.
- a KS a polypeptide termed the CLF, with end-to-end amino acid sequence similarity to the KS, but in which the essential active-site
- Hybrid polyketides have been obtained by the introduction of clones containing DNA coding for one Type II PKS into another strain containing a different Type II PKS gene cluster.
- DNA derived from the gene cluster for actinorhodin a blue-pigmented polyketide from S. coelicolor
- S. coelicolor a blue-pigmented polyketide from S. coelicolor
- International Application WO 95/08548 describes the production of hybrid polyketides by replacement of actinorhodin PKS genes with heterologous DNA from other Type II PKS gene clusters.
- International Application WO 95/08548 also describes the construction of a strain of S. coelicolor that substantially lacks the native gene cluster for actinorhodin, and the use in that strain of a plasmid vector pRM5 derived from the low-copy number vector SCP2* isolated from S. coelicolor (Bibb, M. J. and Hopwood, D. A., J. Gen. Microbiol., vol. 126, p.
- heterologous PKS-encoding DNA may be expressed under the control of the divergent actI/actIII promoter region of the actinorhodin gene cluster (Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., J. Biol. Chem., vol. 267, pp. 19278-19290 (1992)).
- the plasmid pRM5 also contains DNA from the actinorhodin biosynthetic gene cluster encoding the gene for a specific activator protein, ActII-orf4.
- the ActII-orf4 protein is required for transcription of the genes placed under the control of the actI/actII bidirectional promoter and activates gene expression during the transition from growth to stationary phase in the vegetative mycelium (Hallam, S. E. et al., Gene, vol. 74, pp. 305-320 (1988)).
- Type II clusters in Streptomyces are known to be activated by pathway-specific activator genes (Narva, K. E. and Feitelson, J. S., J. Bacteriol., vol. 172, pp. 326-333 (1990); Stutzman-Engwall, K. J. et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 174, pp. 144-154 (1992); Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., Cell, vol. 66, pp. 769-780 (1991); Takano, E. et al., Mol. Microbiol., vol. 6, pp. 2797-2804 (1992); Takano, E. et al., Mol.
- the DnrI gene product complements a mutation in the actIII-orf4 gene of S. coelicolor , implying that DnrI and ActII-orf4 proteins act on similar targets.
- a gene (srmR) has been described (EP 0 524 832 A2) that is located near the Type I PKS gene cluster for the macrolide polyketide spiramycin. This gene specifically activates the production of the macrolide antibiotic spiramycin, but no other examples have been found of such a gene.
- no homologues of the ActII-orf4/DnrI/RedD family of activators have been described that act on Type I PKS genes.
- PKS gene modules can be treated as building blocks for the construction of enzyme systems, and thus novel erythromycin products, of desired types. This generally involves the cutting out and assembly of modules and multi-module groupings. Logical places for making and breaking intermodular connections are in the linking regions between modules. However, it may be preferable to make cuts and joins actually within domains (i.e., the enzyme-coding portions), close to the edges thereof.
- the DNA is highly conserved here among all modular PKS's, and this may aid in the construction of hybrids that can be transcribed. It also may assist in maintaining the spacing of the active sites of the encoded enzymes, which can be important. For example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan.
- the excised loading module would have provided a propionate starter, and the replacement is intended to provide one or more different starters.
- Propionate may feed into the KS of the extension module from a propionate pool in the host cell, leading to dilution of the desired products. This can largely be prevented by substituting an extended loading module that includes all or most of the KS domain.
- the splice site may be in the end region of the KS gene, early in the following AT gene or in the linker region between them.
- hybrid PKS gene assemblies can be constructed, to provide a corresponding variety of novel polyketides useful as starting materials in the present invention.
- International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998 describes construction of a hybrid PKS gene assembly containing a wide-specificity loading module (see also Marsden, A. F. A. et al., Science, vol. 279, pp. 199-202 (1998)).
- International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998 describes grafting of the wide-specificity avr loading module onto the first multienzyme component of DEBS in place of the normal loading module.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998 describes certain novel polyketides that can be prepared using this hybrid PKS gene assembly.
- Patent Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998 further describes the construction of a hybrid PKS gene assembly by grafting of the loading module for the rapamycin PKS onto the first multienzyme component of DEBS in place of the normal loading module.
- the loading module of the rapamycin PKS differs from the loading modules of DEBS and the avermectin PKS in that it comprises a CoA ligase domain, an enoylreductase (“ER”) domain and an ACP.
- Suitable organic acids including the natural starter unit 3,4-dihydroxycyclohexane carboxylic acid may be activated in situ on the PKS loading domain, with or without reduction by the ER domain transferred to the ACP for intramolecular loading of the KS of extension module 1.
- This method may comprise providing nucleic acid encoding the PKS multienzyme and introducing it into an organism where it can be expressed.
- additional methods may be disclosed in WO 00/00618, published Jan. 6, 2000, which is herein incorporated by reference.
- the domains or portions of them may be derived from the same or from different sources and may comprise either natural or engineered domains.
- the ATq domain can be replaced by an AT domain derived from any extension module of a Type I PKS having specificity for the loading of malonate units, so long as the KSq domain is chosen to have a matching specificity towards malonate units.
- Particularly suitable for this purpose are components of the PKS's for the biosynthesis of erythromycin, methylmycin, oleandomycin, tylosin, spiramycin, midecamycin and niddamycin, for all of which the gene and modular organization is known at least in part.
- Particularly suitable sources of the genes encoding a loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP are the loading modules of oleandomycin, spiramycin, niddamycin, methylmycin and monensin, which are specific for the loading of malonate units that are subsequently decarboxylated to acetate starter units.
- KSq domain in a loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP may be substituted by a CLF polypeptide of a Type II PKS.
- CLF in addition to any other activities that it may possess, is an analogue of the KSq domain and can act as a decarboxylase toward bound malonate units.
- the loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP may be linked to a hybrid PKS produced for example as in International Applications WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, and WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998. It is particularly useful to link such a loading module to gene assemblies encoding hybrid PKS's that produce novel derivatives of 14-membered macrolides.
- novel polyketides for use as starting materials in the present invention may also involve the use of transformant organisms that are capable of modifying the initial products, e.g., by carrying out all or some of the biosynthetic modifications normal in the production of erythromycins. Use may be made of mutant organisms in which some of the normal pathways are blocked, e.g., to produce products without one or more “natural” hydroxy groups or sugar groups. See, for instance, International Application WO 91/16334 or Weber et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 164, pp.
- a preferred approach involves the introduction of a starter unit into a fermentation broth of an erythromycin-producing organism. This approach is more effective for transformed organisms capable of producing erythromycins.
- the starter unit analogue can be introduced to preparations of untransformed or transformed erythromycin-producing organisms, for example, fractionated or unfractionated broken-cell preparations.
- one or more segments of DNA encoding individual modules or domains within a heterologous Type I PKS may be used to replace the DNA encoding individual modules or domains, respectively, within the DEBS genes of an erythromycin-producing organism. Loading modules and extension modules drawn from natural or non-natural PKS's are suitable for this “donor” PKS.
- Type I PKS's for the biosynthesis of erythromycin, rapamycin, avermectin, tetronasin, oleandomycin, monensin, amphotericin and rifamycin, for which the gene and modular organization is known through gene sequence analysis, at least in part.
- the loading modules of the donor PKS are loading modules showing a relaxed specificity, for example, the loading module of the avermectin-producing PKS of Streptomyces avermitilis; loading modules possessing an unusual specificity, for example, the loading modules of the rapamycin-, FK506- and ascomycin-producing PKS's, all of which naturally accept a shikimate-derived starter unit; or loading modules that preferentially yield polypeptides with a desired starter unit such as acetate, for example, loading modules of the type KSq-ATq-ACP.
- both the untransformed and genetically engineered erythromycin-producing organisms have been found to produce non-natural erythromycins, and, where appropriate, the products are found to undergo the same processing as the natural erythromycin.
- An additional method calls for the introduction of a plasmid containing “donor” PKS DNA into a host cell.
- the host cell may simply harbor the plasmid, or the plasmid may integrate into the genome of the cell.
- a plasmid with an int sequence will integrate into a specific attachment site (att) of a host's chromosome.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998 describes integration of such a plasmid into the DEBS genes on the chromosome of the erythromycin-producing strain by homologous recombination, to create a hybrid PKS.
- a preferred embodiment is when the donor PKS DNA includes a segment encoding a loading module in such a way that this loading module becomes linked to the DEBS genes on the chromosome.
- a hybrid PKS produces valuable and novel erythromycin products when cultured under suitable conditions as described by, for example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998.
- the novel erythromycin products contain a starter unit typical of those used by the avermectin PKS.
- desired genes present on an SCP2*-derived plasmid are placed under the control of the bidirectional act/promoter derived from the actinorhodin biosynthetic gene cluster of S. coelicolor .
- the vector also contains the structural gene encoding the specific activator protein ActII-orf4.
- the recombinant plasmid is introduced into S. erythraea under conditions where either the introduced PKS genes, or PKS genes already present in the host strain, are expressed under the control of the actI promoter.
- Such strains produce the desired erythromycin product, and the activator gene requires only the presence of the specific promoter in order to enhance transcriptional efficiency from the promoter.
- the recombinant strains can produce levels of erythromycin product more than ten times those produced when the same PKS genes are under the control of the natural promoter.
- the specific erythromycin product is also produced precociously in growing culture, rather than only during the transition from growth to stationary phase. Thus, when the genetically engineered cell is S.
- the activator and promoter are derived from the actinorhodin PKS gene cluster, and the actI/actII/-orf4-regulated ery PKS gene cluster is housed in the chromosome following the site-specific integration of a low copy-number plasmid vector, culturing of the cells under suitable conditions can produce more than ten times the amount of 14-membered macrolide product produced by a comparable strain not under such heterologous control.
- the PKS genes under this heterologous control are hybrid Type I PKS genes whose construction is described herein, more than ten-fold hybrid polyketide product can be obtained compared to the same hybrid Type I PKS genes not under such control.
- hybrid Type I PKS gene cluster is DEBS in which the ery loading module has been replaced by the avr loading module
- a ten-fold increase is found in the total amounts of novel 14-membered macrolides produced by the genetically engineered cells when cultured under suitable conditions as described in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998.
- Suitable and preferred means for growing the untransformed and genetically-engineered erythromycin-producing cells, and suitable and preferred means for the isolation, identification and practical utility of the novel erythromycins are described more fully in, for example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998.
- Untransformed or transformed organisms useful in the methods described above and capable of producing erythromycins include but are not limited to Saccharopolyspora species, Streptomyces griseoplanus, Nocardia sp., Micromonospora sp., Arthobacter sp., and S. antibioticus, but excluding S. coelicolor .
- Particularly suitable in this regard are untransformed and transformed strains of S. erythraea , for example NRRL 2338, 18643, 21484.
- Preferred transformed strains are those in which the erythromycin loading module has been replaced with the loading module from the avermectin producer, S. avermitilis, or the rapamycin producer, S. hygroscopicus.
- the preferred method for producing starting compounds for the current invention requires fermentation of the appropriate organism in the presence of the appropriate carboxylic acid of the formula R 17 CO 2 H, wherein R 17 is as defined in claim 1.
- the carboxylic acid is added to the fermentation either at the time of inoculation or at intervals during the fermentation.
- Production of polyketides that may be useful in the preparation of the compounds of this invention may be monitored by removing samples from the fermentation, extracting with an organic solvent and following the appearance of the starting compounds by chromatography, such as high-pressure liquid chromatography. Incubation is continued until the yield of the starting compound has been maximized, generally for a period of 4 to 10 days.
- a preferred level of each addition of the carboxylic acid or derivative thereof is between 0.05 and 4.0 g/L.
- the best yields of the starting compounds are generally obtained by gradually adding the acid or derivative to the fermentation, for example by daily addition over a period of several days.
- the medium used for the fermentation may be a conventional complex medium containing assimilable sources of carbon, nitrogen and trace elements.
- Scheme 1 describes the general synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —C( ⁇ N—OR 8 )— or —CH(NR 8 R 9 )—.
- Starting compounds of formula 2 can be prepared from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Treatment of compounds of formula 2 with R 8 O.NH 2 HCl in the presence of a base such as triethylamine or pyridine can afford compounds of formula 3.
- Reduction of compounds of formula 3, wherein R 8 is H, with a reducing agent or by catalytic hydrogenation can provide amines of formula 4, which can be converted to compounds of formula 5 via reductive alkylation or direct alkylation.
- Scheme 2 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is NR 9 CHR 8 —.
- Starting compounds of formula 6 can be made according to Scheme 1.
- Compounds of formula 6 can be converted to those of formula 8 via compounds of formula 7 by means of Beckmann rearrangement as described by Yamamoto et al. (see B. M. Trost, Comprehensive Organic Transformations, vol. 4, pp. 763-794 (hereinafter “ Trost ”); Yamamoto et al., J. Amer. Chem. Soc., p. 7368 (1981) (hereinafter “ Yamamoto 1981”)).
- Scheme 3 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CHR 8 NR 9 —.
- Starting compounds of formula 10 can be made according to Scheme 1 or prepared from the oxime of formula 6 via base-induced epimerization (see R. R. Wilkening et al., Bioorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., vol. 3, pp. 1287-1292 (1993) (hereinafter “ Wilkening ”)).
- Wilkening Compounds of formula 10 can be converted to those of formula 12 via compounds of formula 11 by means of Beckmann rearrangement as described by Yamamoto et al. (see Trost, pp. 763-794; Yamamoto 1981, p. 7368).
- Compounds of formula 12 wherein R 8 is hydrogen can be made by following substantially the same procedures as those of Yamamoto 1983, p. 4711.
- Compounds of formula 12 can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to afford compounds of formula 13.
- Scheme 4 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —NR 9 CH 2 —.
- the starting compound of formula 14 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1.
- the transformation of the compound of formula 14 to those of formula 17 can be done by following substantially the same procedures as those described by S. Djokic et al., J. Chem. Soc., Perkin Trans. I, pp. 1881-1890 (1986), and M. Bright et al., J. Antibiotics, vol. 41, p. 1029 (1998).
- the compound of formula 15 can be obtained from that of formula 14 via Beckmann rearrangement.
- Reduction of the compound of formula 15 can provide that of formula 16, which can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to afford the compounds of formula 17.
- Compounds of formula 18 can be prepared from those of formula 17 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 5 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —NR 9 CH 2 —.
- Starting compounds of formula 19 wherein R 10 is not hydrogen can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8 as described below.
- the transformation of compounds of formula 19 to those of formula 22 can be achieved by following substantially the same procedures as those described by A. Dennis et al., Bioorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., pp. 2427-2432 (1998), and S. T. Waddell et al., Biorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., pp. 1321-1326 (1998).
- Compounds of formula 19 can undergo Beckmann rearrangement to provide those of formula 20, which can be reduced to afford the compounds of formula 21.
- Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation can generate the compounds of formula 22.
- the compounds of formula 18 can be made from those of formula 22 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 6 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CH 2 NR 9 —.
- the starting compound of formula 23 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1 or by base-initiated epimerization of the oxime of formula 14 (see Wilkening, pp. 1287-1292).
- the transformation of the compound of formula 23 to those of formula 27 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those described by Wilkening , pp. 1287-1292.
- Beckmann rearrangement of the compound of formula 23 can provide a mixture of the compounds of formulas 24 and 25, and both can be reduced to provide the compound of formula 26 by catalytic hydrogenation or by using a reducing agent.
- Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of the compound of formula 26 leads to those of formula 27, which can be converted to the compounds of formula 28 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 7 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CH 2 NR 9 —.
- Starting compounds of formula 29 wherein R 10 is not hydrogen can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8 as described below, or by base-initiated epimerization of oximes of formula 19 wherein R 10 is not hydrogen (see Wilkening , pp. 1287-1292).
- the transformation of compounds of formula 29 to those of formula 33 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those described by Wilkening , pp. 1287-1292.
- Beckmann rearrangement of compounds of formula 29 can provide a mixture of the compounds of formulas 30 and 31, and both can be reduced to provide the compounds of formula 32 by catalytic hydrogenation or by using a reducing agent.
- Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of the compounds of formula 32 leads to those of formula 33, which can be converted to the compounds of formula 28 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 8 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1.
- the starting compound, the oxime of formula 14 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1.
- the transformation of the compound of formula 14 to those of formula 37 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those reported by Y. Watanabe et al., J. Antibiotics, pp. 1163-1167 (1993).
- the 9-oxime hydroxyl, 2′ hydroxyl and 4′′ hydroxyl of the compound of formula 14 can be protected by using the methods summarized in T. W. Greene and P. G. M Wuts, Protective Groups in Organic Synthesis, 2 d Ed., John Wiley & Sons, pp.
- Greene and Wuts to provide compounds of formula 34, wherein P 1 , P 2 and P 3 represent the same or different protecting groups.
- the preferred protecting groups are silyl ethers, such as trimethylsilyl ether, or esters, such as acetate or benzoate.
- Alkylation of the 6-hydroxyl of compounds of formula 34 can generate those of formula 35, which can be converted to compounds of formula 36 by means of deprotection following the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts, pp. 10-142.
- Deoximation of the compounds of formula 36 can provide those of formula 37.
- Compounds of formula 1 can be made from the compounds of formula 37 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 9 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4′′-O-acylated cladinose) as shown in formula 39.
- Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art.
- the acylation of the compounds of formula 38 can be carried out to provide the compounds of formula 39 using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- the acylation reactions may necessitate protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 10 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4′′-O-acylated cladinose), as shown in formulas 41 and 42.
- Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Acylation of compounds of formula 38 can be carried out to provide the compounds of formula 40, wherein L represents a leaving group such as mesyl, tosyl or halogen, using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- the acylation reactions may necessitate protection of other hydroxyl groups.
- Scheme 11 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4′′-O-carbamated cladinose) as shown in formulas 44, 45 and 46.
- Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Treatment of compounds of formula 38 with carbonyidiimidazole and a base can provide compounds of formula 43. This reaction may necessitate the protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art.
- Compounds of formula 43 can be converted to those of formulas 44 and 45 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of compounds of formula 45 can provide those of formula 46.
- Scheme 12 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4′′-substituted-3′′-desmethoxy cladinose) as shown in formula 49.
- Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-ethyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art. Oxidation of compounds of formula 38 using methods well known to those skilled in the art can provide compounds of formula 47 (see Yang et al., J. Org. Chem., vol. 61, pp. 5149-5152 (1996). (hereinafter “ Yang ”)). This oxidation reaction may necessitate the protection of other hydroxyl groups.
- Scheme 13 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4′′-substituted cladinose) as shown in formulas 54 and 55.
- Starting compounds of formula 47 are available from Scheme 12.
- Compounds of formula 47 can be converted to those of formula 52 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Epoxides of formula 50 can be formed by treating compounds of formula 47 with the sulfur ylides dimethyloxosulfonium methylide and dimethylsulfonium methylide summarized in J. March, Advanced Organic Chemistry, 4 th Ed., John Wiley and Sons, pp. 974-975 (1992).
- Compounds of formula 51 can be converted to those of formula 53 via an epoxide-opening reaction with an azide reagent such as sodium azide. Reduction of compounds of formula 51 can provide compounds of formula 53, which can be converted to those of formulas 54 and 55 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 14 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4′′-substituted cladinose )as shown in formulas 57 and 58.
- Starting compounds of formula 50 are available from Scheme 13.
- Compounds of formula 50 can be converted to those of formula 56 by and epoxide-opening reaction with NH 2 (CH 2 ) n NH 2 , wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
- Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of compounds of formula 56 can provide those of formula 57 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Compounds of formula 50 can be converted to those of formula 58 via an epoxide-opening reaction with NH 2 (CH 2 ) n C(O)NR 8 R 9 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 15 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1, wherein R 1 and R 2 together form a cyclic carbamate or carbazate as shown in formula 65, and the synthesis of compounds of formula 1A, wherein R f is H or a —C(O)-imidazolyl and R 3 is OR 10 as shown in formulas 62 and 63, respectively.
- Starting compounds of formula 37 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8.
- the transformation of compounds of formula 37 to those of formula 64 can be achieved by following substantially the same procedures as those described in WO 99/35157.
- the 2′ hydroxyl and 4′′ hydroxyl of compounds of formula 37 can be protected by using the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts, pp.
- P 1 and P 2 represent the same or different protecting groups.
- the preferred protecting groups are silyl ethers, such as trimethylsilyl ether, or esters, such as acetate or benzoate.
- the 11,12-cyclic carbonation of compounds of formula 59 can be accomplished to provide compounds of formula 60 by using a variety of methods, including DBU and carbonyldiimidazole or trichloroacetyl isocyanate.
- Compounds of formula 60 can be converted to those of formula 61 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Compounds of formula 61 can undergo beta-elimination in the presence of a base such as DBU or triethylamine.
- Reaction of compounds of formula 62 with carbonyldiimidazole and a base such as DBU or metal hydride can provide compounds of formula 63.
- Compounds of formula 61 can be converted directly to compounds of formula 63 by treatment with a base and carbonyldiimidazole.
- Scheme 16 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formula 66.
- Starting compounds of formula 63 are available from Scheme 15. Reaction of compounds of formula 63 with NH 2 C(D)(E)C(F)(G)NH 2 , wherein D, E, F and G are as defined previously, followed by deprotection of P 1 at 2′ and subsequent conventional chemical manipulation of the 2′ hydroxyl can provide compounds of formula 66.
- Scheme 17 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formula 72.
- Starting compounds of formula 67 can be prepared according to Scheme 15.
- Oximation of compounds of formula 68 can be carried out by using conventional methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- the conversion of compounds of formula 68 wherein R 8 is hydrogen to those of formula 69 can be achieved by using a reducing agent such as TiCl 3 , followed by NaBH 3 CN or by catalytic hydrogenation.
- Reaction of compounds of formula 69 with C(D)(E)(O), wherein D and E are as defined previously, in the presence of a acid such as formic acid or acetic acid can generate compounds of formula 70, which can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to provide compounds of formula 71.
- a base followed by a halogenating agent or an appropriate electrophile using the procedures described in WO 99/21865, published May 6, 1999, can generate compounds of formula 72.
- suitable bases include sodium hydride, potassium hydride, DBU, lithium or sodium or potassium diisopropylamide, or potassium or sodium hydroxide.
- halogenating agent examples include 1-(chloromethyl)4-floro-1,4-diazonibicyclo(2.2.2)octane bis(tetrafluoroborate) and (ArSO 2 ) 2 N-halogen, wherein Ar is a C 6 -C 10 aryl.
- Scheme 18 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formulas 75, 77 and 78.
- Starting compounds of formula 73 can be prepared according to Scheme 17.
- Treatment of compounds of formula 73 with tosyl chloride or mesyl chloride and a base such as triethylamine, pyridine or DBU can provide compounds of formula 74.
- Treatment of compounds of formula 74 with a base followed by a halogenating agent or an appropriate electrophile can generate compounds of formula 75.
- suitable bases include sodium hydride, potassium hydride, DBU, lithium or sodium or potassium diisopropylamide, or potassium or sodium hydroxide.
- halogenating agent examples include 1-(chloromethyl)4-fluoro-1,4-diazonibicyclo(2.2.2)octane bis(tetrafluoroborate) and (ArSO 2 ) 2 N-halogen, wherein Ar is a C 6 -C 10 aryl.
- Reaction of compounds of formula 73 with C(D)(E)(O), wherein D and E are as defined previously, in the presence of an acid such formic acid or acetic acid can provide compounds of formula 76.
- Compounds of formula 76 can be converted to those of formula 77 in a fashion similar to the conversion of compounds of formula 74 to those of formula 75.
- Reduction of compounds of formula 77 to those of formula 78 can be carried out by using a reducing agent, for example, triphenylphosphine, or by catalytic hydrogenation by following substantially the same procedures as those described in WO 99/21865.
- Scheme 19 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R 2 together form a cyclic urea as shown in formula 86.
- Starting compounds of formula 60 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 15.
- the cladinose moiety of compounds of formula 60 can be removed to provide compounds of formula 79 by treatment with an acid such as hydrochloric acid or sulfuric acid.
- Oxidation of compounds of formula 79 can be accomplished to provide compounds of formula 80 by using a variety of conventional methods well known to those skilled in the art, such as the modified Pfitzner-Moffat procedure as described in Agouridas , pp. 4080-4100.
- Reaction of compounds of formula 80 with a base such as triethylamine or DBU can promote beta-elimination to generate the alcohols of formula 81.
- Compounds of formula 81 can be converted to those of formula 82 by treatment with carbonyidiimidazole and a base such as triethylamine or DBU.
- Compounds of formula 80 can be converted directly to those of formula 82 by reacting the compounds of formula 80 with carbonyldiimidazole and a base, such as DBU and triethylamine.
- the acetal opening reaction can be carried out to provide the azides of formula 83 by treating compounds of formula 82 with an azide reagent, such as TMS-N 3 , in the presence of a Lewis acid, such as Me 3 Al or Me 2 AlCl.
- the conversion of compounds of formula 83 to those of formula 84 can be achieved by reduction with a reducing agent such as triphenylphosphine or by catalytic hydrogenation.
- Reaction of compounds of formula 84 with a base, such as metal hydride or DBU, and carbonyldiimidazole followed by R 6 B 1 NH 2 , wherein R 6 and B 1 are as defined previously, can afford the 11,12-cyclic ureas of formula 85.
- the 2′ protecting group can be removed by using the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts , pp. 10-142. Subsequent conventional chemical manipulation of the 2′ hydroxyl group can provide compounds of formula 86.
- Scheme 20 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 3 and Y together form a cyclic ketal as shown in formula 88.
- Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- the cladinose moiety of compounds of formula 38 can be removed to provide compounds of formula 87 by treatment with an acid, such hydrochloric acid or sulfuric acid.
- the ketals of formula 88 can be formed from the compounds of formula 87 by reaction with R 14 R 15 C(O), wherein R 14 and R 15 are as defined previously, in the presence of an acid.
- the preferred acid is p-toluenesulfonic acid.
- the compounds of the present invention may have asymmetric carbon atoms.
- Such diastereomeric mixtures can be separated into their individual diastereomers on the basis of their physical chemical differences by methods known to those skilled in the art, for example, by chromatography or fractional crystallization.
- Enantiomers can be separated by converting the enantiomeric mixtures into a diastereomeric mixture by reaction with an appropriate optically active compound (e.g., alcohol), separating the diastereomers and converting (e.g., hydrolyzing) the individual diastereomers to the corresponding pure enantiomers. All such isomers, including the enantiomer mixtures, the diastereomer mixtures, the pure diastereomers and the pure enantiomers, are considered to be part of the invention.
- the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A that are basic in nature are capable of forming a wide variety of salts with various inorganic and organic acids. Although such salts must be pharmaceutically acceptable for administration to animals (including mammals, fish and birds), it is often desirable in practice to initially isolate a compound of formula 1 or 1A from the reaction mixture as a pharmaceutically unacceptable salt, to then simply convert the latter back to the free base compound by treatment with an alkaline reagent, and to subsequently convert the latter free base to a pharmaceutically acceptable acid addition salt.
- the acid addition salts of the base compounds of this invention are readily prepared by treating the base compound with a substantially equivalent amount of the chosen mineral or organic acid in an aqueous solvent medium or in a suitable organic solvent, such as methanol or ethanol. Upon careful evaporation of the solvent, the desired solid salt is readily obtained.
- the desired acid salt can also be precipitated from a solution of the free base in an organic solvent by adding to the solution an appropriate mineral or organic acid.
- Those compounds of formulas 1 and 1A that are acidic in nature are capable of forming base salts with various pharmacologically acceptable cations.
- Examples of such salts include the alkali metal or alkaline earth metal salts and, particularly, the sodium and potassium salts. These salts may be prepared by conventional techniques.
- the chemical bases that are used as reagents to prepare the pharmaceutically acceptable base salts of this invention are those that form non-toxic base salts with the acidic compounds of formulas 1 and 1A.
- Such non-toxic base salts include those derived from such pharmacologically acceptable cations as sodium, potassium, calcium and magnesium, etc.
- salts can be prepared by treating the corresponding acidic compounds with an aqueous solution containing the desired pharmacologically acceptable cations and then evaporating the resulting solution to dryness, preferably under reduced pressure.
- they may also be prepared by mixing lower alkanolic solutions of the acidic compounds and the desired alkali metal alkoxide together and then evaporating the resulting solution to dryness in the same manner as before.
- stoichiometric quantities of reagents are preferably employed in order to ensure completeness of the reaction and maximum yields of the desired final product.
- the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and their pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates may be administered alone or in combination with pharmaceutically acceptable carriers, in either single or multiple doses.
- a pharmaceutically acceptable carrier will generally be selected with regard to the intended route of administration and standard pharmaceutical practice.
- compositions of this invention comprise any of the compounds of the present invention, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof, together with any pharmaceutically acceptable carrier.
- suitable pharmaceutical carriers include, but are not limited to, inert solid diluents or fillers, sterile aqueous solutions and various organic solvents.
- Suitable pharmaceutically acceptable carriers include ion exchangers, alumina, aluminum stearate, lecithin, self-emulsifying drug delivery systems (SEDDS), surfactants used in pharmaceutical dosage forms such as Tweens or other similar polymeric delivery matrices, serum proteins, such as human serum albumin, polyethylene glycol polymers such as PEG-400, buffer substances such as phosphates, glycine, sorbic acid, potassium sorbate, partial glyceride mixtures of saturated vegetable fatty acids, water, salts or electrolytes, such as protamine sulfate, disodium hydrogen phosphate, potassium hydrogen phosphate, sodium chloride, zinc salts, colloidal silica, magnesium trisilicate, polyvinyl pyrrolidone, cellulose-based substances, sodium carboxymethylcellulose, polyacrylates, waxes, polyethylene-polyoxypropylene-block polymers and wool fat.
- SEDDS self-emulsifying drug delivery systems
- compositions formed using the active compounds of this invention may be administered orally, parenterally, by inhalation spray, topically, rectally, nasally, buccally, vaginally or via an implanted reservoir.
- the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may contain any conventional non-toxic pharmaceutically acceptable carriers.
- the pH of the formulation may be adjusted with pharmaceutically acceptable acids, bases or buffers to enhance the stability of the formulated compound or its delivery form.
- parenteral as used herein includes subcutaneous, intracutaneous, intravenous, intramuscular, intra-articular, intraperitoneal, intrasynovial, intrasternal, intrathecal, intralesional and intracranial injection or infusion techniques.
- the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may be in the form of solutions containing sesame or peanut oil, aqueous propylene glycol or sterile aqueous solution.
- Aqueous solutions should be suitably buffered if necessary and the liquid diluent first rendered isotonic with sufficient saline or glucose.
- These particular aqueous solutions are especially suitable for intravenous, intramuscular, subcutaneous and intraperitoneal administration.
- the sterile aqueous media employed are all readily available by standard techniques known to those skilled in the art.
- compositions of this invention may be in the form of a sterile injectable preparation, for example, as a sterile injectable aqueous or oleaginous suspension.
- This suspension may be formulated according to techniques known in the art using suitable dispersing or wetting agents (such as, for example, Tween 80) and suspending agents.
- the sterile injectable preparation may also be a sterile injectable solution or suspension in a non-toxic parenterally-acceptable diluent or solvent, for example, as a solution in 1,3-butanediol.
- suitable vehicles and solvents that may be employed are mannitol, water, Ringer's solution and isotonic sodium chloride solution.
- sterile, fixed oils are conventionally employed as a solvent or suspending medium.
- any bland fixed oil may be employed, including synthetic mono- or diglycerides.
- Fatty acids, such as oleic acid and its glyceride derivatives are useful in the preparation of injectables, as are natural pharmaceutically-acceptable oils, such as olive oil or castor oil, especially in their polyoxyethylated versions.
- These oil solutions or suspensions may also contain a long-chain alcohol diluent or dispersant such as carboxymethyl cellulose or similar dispersing agents that are commonly used in the formulation of pharmaceutically acceptable dosage forms such as emulsions and/or suspensions.
- Other commonly used surfactants such as Tweens and Spans and/or other similar emulsifying agents or bioavailability enhancers that are commonly used in the manufacture of pharmaceutically acceptable solid, liquid or other dosage forms may also be used for the purposes of formulation.
- compositions of this invention may be orally administered in any orally acceptable dosage form including, but not limited to, hard or soft gelatin capsules, tablets, powders, lozenges, emulsions and aqueous suspensions, dispersions and solutions.
- carriers that are commonly used include lactose and corn starch.
- excipients such as sodium citrate, calcium carbonate and calcium phosphate may be employed along with disintegrants such as starch, methylcellulose, alginic acid and certain complex silicates, together with binding agents such as polyvinylpyrrolidone, sucrose, gelatin and acacia.
- Lubricating agents such as magnesium stearate, sodium lauryl sulfate and talc, are also typically added.
- Solid compositions of a similar type may also be employed as fillers for oral administration in the form of soft and hard filled gelatin capsules.
- Preferred diluents for oral administration in a capsule form include lactose or milk sugar and high molecular weight polyethylene glycols.
- compositions of this invention may also be administered in the form of suppositories for rectal administration.
- These compositions can be prepared by mixing a compound of this invention with a suitable non-irritating excipient that is solid at room temperature but liquid at the rectal temperature. The excipient will therefore melt in the rectum to release the active components.
- suitable non-irritating excipient include, but are not limited to, cocoa butter, beeswax and polyethylene glycols.
- Topical administration of the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention is especially useful when the desired treatment involves areas or organs readily accessible by topical application.
- the pharmaceutical composition should be formulated with a suitable ointment containing the active components suspended or dissolved in a carrier.
- Carriers for topical administration of the compounds of this invention include, but are not limited to, mineral oil, liquid petroleum, white petroleum, propylene glycol, polyoxyethylene polyoxypropylene compound, emulsifying wax and water.
- the pharmaceutical composition can be formulated with a suitable lotion or cream containing the active compound suspended or dissolved in a carrier.
- Suitable carriers include, but are not limited to, mineral oil, sorbitan monostearate, polysorbate 60, cetyl esters wax, cetearyl alcohol, 2-octyldodecanol, benzyl alcohol and water.
- the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may also be topically applied to the lower intestinal tract by rectal suppository formulation or in a suitable enema formulation. Topically transdermal patches are also included in this invention.
- compositions of this invention may be administered by nasal aerosol or inhalation.
- Such compositions are prepared according to techniques well known in the art of pharmaceutical formulation and may be prepared as solutions in saline, employing benzyl alcohol or other suitable preservatives, absorption promoters to enhance bioavailability, fluorocarbons, and/or other solubilizing or dispersing agents known in the art.
- an effective dose of an active compound of this invention is administered to a susceptible or infected animal (including mammals, fish and birds) by parenteral, oral, nasal, buccal, vaginal or rectal routes, or locally as a topical application to the skin and/or mucous membranes.
- a susceptible or infected animal including mammals, fish and birds
- parenteral, oral, nasal, buccal, vaginal or rectal routes or locally as a topical application to the skin and/or mucous membranes.
- the route of administration will depend on the mammal, fish or bird that is being treated.
- the daily dose will usually range from about 0.25 to about 150 mg/kg body weight of the patient to be treated, preferably from about 0.25 to about 25 mg/kg.
- the compounds and compositions of this invention will be administered from about ______ to about ______ times per day or, alternatively, as a continuous infusion. Such administration can be used as a chronic or acute therapy.
- the amount of active ingredient that may be combined with the carrier materials to produce a single dosage form will vary depending upon the host treated and the particular mode of administration.
- the compounds of this invention may be administered to a patient either as a single agent or in combination with other agents.
- the compounds of this invention may be co-administered with other compounds of this invention or with other antibacterial or antiprotozoal agents to increase the effect of therapy.
- Combination therapies according to this invention may exert an additive or synergistic antibacterial or antiprotozoal effect, e.g., because each component agent of the combination may act on a different site or through a different mechanism.
- the use of such combination therapies may also advantageously reduce the dosage of a given conventional antibiotic agent that would be required for a desired therapeutic effect, as compared to when that agent is administered as a monotherapy.
- compositions according to this invention may be comprised of a combination of a compound of this invention and another agent having a different therapeutic or prophylactic effect.
- the compounds of this invention When the compounds of this invention are administered in combination therapies with other agents, they may be administered sequentially or concurrently to the patient.
- the additional agents may be administered separately, as part of a multiple dose regimen, from the compounds of this invention.
- those agents may be part of a single dosage form, mixed together with the compounds of this invention in a single composition.
- the pharmaceutical compositions according to this invention may comprise a combination of an antibacterial or antiprotozoal agent according to this invention and one or more therapeutic agents.
- each of the compounds of the present invention may be tested in various ways. For example, the activity of each of the compounds of the present invention against bacterial and protozoal pathogens is demonstrated by each compound's ability to inhibit the growth of defined strains of human (Assay I) or animal (Assays II and III) pathogens.
- Assay I employs conventional methodology and interpretation criteria. This assay is designed to identify chemical modifications that may lead to compounds that circumvent defined macrolide resistance mechanisms. Assay I employs a panel of bacterial strains that includes a variety of target pathogenic species, including representatives of previously characterized macrolide resistance mechanisms. Use of this panel demonstrates the relationship between the chemical structure of a compound and its activity with respect to potency, spectrum of activity, and structural elements or modifications that may be necessary to obviate resistance mechanisms. The bacterial pathogens that are included in the screening panel are shown in the table below. In many cases, both the macrolide-susceptible parent strain and the macrolide-resistant strain derived from it are available to provide a more accurate assessment of the compound's ability to circumvent the resistance mechanism.
- Strains that contain the gene with the designation of ermA/ermB/ermC are resistant to macrolides, lincosamides and streptogramin B antibiotics. This resistance is due to modification (methylation) of 23S rRNA molecules by an Erm methylase, which generally prevents the binding of all three structural classes.
- macrolide efflux Two types of macrolide efflux have been described; msrA encodes a component of an efflux system in staphylococci that prevents the entry of macrolides and streptogramins, while mefA/E encodes a transmembrane protein that appears to efflux only macrolides.
- Inactivation of macrolide antibiotics can occur and can be mediated either by a phosphorylation of the 2′-hydroxyl (mph) or by cleavage of the macrocyclic lactone (esterase).
- the strains may be characterized using conventional polymerase chain reaction (PCR) technology and/or by sequencing the resistance determinant.
- PCR polymerase chain reaction
- the use of PCR technology in this application is described in J. Sutcliffe et al., “Detection of Erythromycin-Resistant Determinants by PCR”, Antimicrobial Agents and Chemotherapy , vol. 40, no. 11, pp. 2562-2566 (1996).
- test compounds are initially dissolved in dimethylsulfoxide (DMSO) as 40 mg/ml stock solutions.
- DMSO dimethylsulfoxide
- the antibacterial assay is performed in microtiter trays and interpreted according to Performance Standards for Antimicrobial Disk Susceptibility Tests—Sixth Edition: Approved Standard, published by The National Committee for Clinical Laboratory Standards (NCCLS) guidelines; the minimum inhibitory concentration (MIC) is used to compare the strains.
- NCCLS National Committee for Clinical Laboratory Standards
- MIC minimum inhibitory concentration
- the terms “acr AB” and “acr AB-like” indicate that an intrinsia multidrug efflux pump exists in the strain.
- This assay is based on the liquid dilution method in microliter format.
- a single colony of P. multocida (strain 59A067) is inoculated into 5 ml of brain heart infusion (BHI) broth.
- the test compounds are prepared by solubilizing 1 mg of the compound in 125 ⁇ l of dimethylsulfoxide (DMSO). Dilutions of the test compound are prepared using uninoculated BHI broth.
- the concentrations of the test compound used range from 200 ⁇ g/ml to 0.098 ⁇ g/ml by two-fold serial dilutions. The P.
- multocida -inoculated BHI is diluted with uninoculated BHI broth to make a 10 4 cell suspension per 200 ⁇ l.
- the BHI cell suspensions are mixed with respective serial dilutions of the test compound and incubated at 37° C. for 18 hours.
- the minimum inhibitory concentration (MIC) is equal to the concentration of the compound exhibiting 100% inhibition of growth of P. multocida as determined by comparison with an uninoculated control.
- Assay III is used to test for activity against Pasteurella haemolytica.
- This assay is based on the agar dilution method using a Steers Replicator. Two to five colonies isolated from an agar plate are inoculated into BHI broth and incubated overnight at 37° C. with shaking (200 rpm). The next morning, 300 ⁇ l of the fully grown P. haemolytica preculture is inoculated into 3 ml of fresh BHI broth and is incubated at 37° C. with shaking (200 rpm). The appropriate amounts of the test compounds are dissolved in ethanol and a series of two-fold serial dilutions are prepared. Two ml of the respective serial dilution is mixed with 18 ml of molten BHI agar and solidified. When the inoculated P.
- haemolytica culture reaches 0.5 McFarland standard density, about 5 ⁇ l of the P. haemolytica culture is inoculated onto BHI agar plates containing the various concentrations of the test compound using a Steers Replicator and incubated for 18 hours at 37° C. Initial concentrations of the test compound range from 100-200 ⁇ g/ml.
- the MIC is equal to the concentration of the test compound exhibiting 100% inhibition of growth of P. haemolytica as determined by comparison with an uninoculated control.
- the in vivo activity of the compounds of the present invention can be determined by conventional animal protection studies well known to those skilled in the art, usually carried out in mice.
- Assay IV is an example of an animal protection study performed in mice and used to test for activity against P. multocida.
- mice are allotted to cages (10 per cage) upon their arrival, and allowed to acclimate for a minimum of 48 hours before being used.
- Animals are inoculated with 0.5 ml of a 3 ⁇ 10 3 CFU/ml bacterial suspension ( P. multocida strain 59A006) intraperitoneally.
- Each experiment has at least 3 non-medicated control groups, including one infected with a 0.1 ⁇ challenge dose and two infected with a 1 ⁇ challenge dose; a 10 ⁇ challenge data group may also be used.
- mice in a given study can be challenged within 30-90 minutes, especially if a repeating syringe (such as a Cornwall® syringe) is used to administer the challenge. Thirty minutes after challenging has begun, the first compound treatment is given. It may be necessary for a second person to begin compound dosing if all of the animals have not been challenged at the end of 30 minutes.
- the routes of administration are subcutaneous or oral. Subcutaneous doses are administered into the loose skin in the back of the neck, whereas oral doses are given by means of a feeding needle. In both cases, a volume of 0.2 ml is used per mouse.
- test compounds are administered 30 minutes, 4 hours and 24 hours after challenge.
- a control compound of known efficacy administered by the same route is included in each test.
- the animals are observed daily, and the number of survivors in each group is recorded.
- the P. multocida model monitoring continues for 96 hours (four days) post challenge.
- the PD 50 is a calculated dose at which the test compound protects 50% of a group of mice from mortality due to a bacterial infection that would be lethal in the absence of drug treatment.
- Method A The compound of formula 24, obtained from Example 6, is dissolved in glacial acetic acid. Platinum oxide catalyst (50 mole %) is added, and the reaction is flushed with nitrogen, placed under 50 psi hydrogen and shaken at room temperature for 24 hours. Additional platinum oxide catalyst (50 mole %) is added, and the reaction is flushed with nitrogen, placed under 50 psi hydrogen and shaken at room temperature for an additional 24-48 hours. The reaction is worked up by filtration through CeliteTM. A volume of 25 mL of water is added, and the pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 9-10 using 1N NaOH. The reaction mixture is extracted with 3 ⁇ 25 mL methylene chloride and dried over Na 2 SO 4 . Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid product.
- Method B The compound of formula 24 is dissolved in 0.5 mL MeOH and cooled to 0-5° C. NaBH 4 (10 equiv.) is added, and the reaction is stirred for 4 hours at 0-5° C., warmed to room temperature and stirred overnight. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 10 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 8-9 using 1N NaOH, extracted with 3 ⁇ 5 mL methylene chloride and dried over Na 2 SO 4 . Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid product.
Landscapes
- Health & Medical Sciences (AREA)
- Chemical & Material Sciences (AREA)
- Organic Chemistry (AREA)
- Life Sciences & Earth Sciences (AREA)
- General Health & Medical Sciences (AREA)
- Veterinary Medicine (AREA)
- Medicinal Chemistry (AREA)
- Pharmacology & Pharmacy (AREA)
- Animal Behavior & Ethology (AREA)
- Public Health (AREA)
- Nuclear Medicine, Radiotherapy & Molecular Imaging (AREA)
- General Chemical & Material Sciences (AREA)
- Chemical Kinetics & Catalysis (AREA)
- Molecular Biology (AREA)
- Engineering & Computer Science (AREA)
- Biotechnology (AREA)
- Biochemistry (AREA)
- Genetics & Genomics (AREA)
- Communicable Diseases (AREA)
- Oncology (AREA)
- Bioinformatics & Cheminformatics (AREA)
- Tropical Medicine & Parasitology (AREA)
- Epidemiology (AREA)
- Pharmaceuticals Containing Other Organic And Inorganic Compounds (AREA)
- Saccharide Compounds (AREA)
Abstract
Description
- This invention relates to novel macrolide compounds that are useful as antibacterial and antiprotozoal agents in mammals, including man, as well as in fish and birds. This invention also relates to methods of preparing the novel compounds and pharmaceutical compositions containing the novel compounds. In addition, the present invention includes methods of treating bacterial and protozoal infections through the administration of the novel compounds to mammals, fish and birds requiring such treatment.
- Although some 13-methyl erythromycins (also known as 15-norerythromycins) have been reported previously (Kibwage et al., J. Antibiotics, vol. 40, pp. 1-6, (1987); Weber & McAlpine, U.S. Pat. No. 5,141,926), these have been confined to 15-norerythromycin C and 6-deoxy-15-norerythromycins B and D. Moreover, not only have these 15-norerythromycins been found as extremely minor components co-expressed with high levels of “natural” erythromycins (13-ethyl erythromycins), but the 13-methyl counterparts (15-norerythromycins A and B) to the most desirable and biologically-active “natural” erythromycins (erythromycin A and B) have never previously been isolated.
- Chemical modification of “natural” erythromycins has proven to be an extremely effective means for enhancing the bioefficacy of the “natural” molecules. Thus, one would expect chemical modification of novel erythromycins to similarly produce compounds with desirable and enhanced bioefficacies. International Patent Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, filed Jul. 4, 1997, describes in general terms the production of novel polyketides through recombinant DNA technologies. The use of these technologies to generate novel erythromycins, many of which have starter units different from the propionate starter unit characteristic of the “natural” erythromycins, is described in pending International Patent Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, filed Jul. 4, 1997. Chemical modification of these novel erythromycins is also described in co-pending International Patent Applications WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15, 1999, filed Dec. 21, 1998, and WO 99/35157, published Jul. 15, 1999.
- Macrolide antibiotics are known to be useful in the treatment of a broad spectrum of bacterial and protozoal infections in mammals (including humans), fish and birds. Various derivatives of erythromycin A that are useful as antibiotic agents are referred to in U.S. patent application serial No. 60/049,349, filed Jun. 11, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 601046,150, filed May 9, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/063,676, filed Oct. 29, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/087,798, filed Jun. 3, 1998; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/054,866, filed Aug. 6, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/063,161, filed Oct. 29, 1997; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/117,342, filed Jan. 27, 1999; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/130,809, filed Apr. 23, 1999; U.S. patent application serial No. 60/130,912, filed Apr. 23, 1999; and U.S. patent application serial No. 60/130,913, filed Apr. 23, 1999. Each of the foregoing U.S. patent applications is incorporated herein by reference in its entirety. Like other macrolide antibiotics, the novel erythromycin derivatives of the present invention possess activity against infections caused by various gram-positive and gram-negative bacteria as well as protozoa, as described below.
- The present invention relates to novel derivatives of erythromycin that are useful as antibacterial and antiprotozoal agents in mammals (including humans), fish and birds. In particular, the compounds of the present invention include novel 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives prepared by chemical modification of 13-methyl erythromycins, which have been produced by direct fermentation. The invention further relates to methods for preparing the claimed compounds, pharmaceutical compositions containing such compounds and methods of treatment with such compounds and compositions.
-
- and to pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof, wherein:
- A is H or halogen;
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH(NR 8R9)—, —CHR8NR9—, —NR9CHR8—, —C(═NR8)— and —C(═N—OR8)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1;
- Y is selected from CH 2, C(O), CHF, CF2, C═C(RaRb), CHSR7, CHR7, C═S, —C(═NR8)—, —C(═N—OR8), CH(OR8), CH(OC(O)R8), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR8R9), CH(O(CRaRb)nAr), CH(OC(O)(CRaRb)nAr), CH(OC(O)CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr), CH(OC(O)NR8NR8R9), CH(OC(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr), CH(OC(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr), —CH(NR8R9)—, CH(NR8C(O)OR8), CH(NR8C(O)NR8R9), CH(NR8C(O)R8), CH(S(CRaRb)nAr), —CH(NH(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr) and CH(NH(CRaRb)nAr), wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
-
- R 1 and R2 can be taken separately or together;
- when taken separately, R 1 is independently selected from OR8, OC(O)R8, OC(O)NR8R9, NR8R9, NR8C(O)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, O(CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr and N(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- when taken separately, R 2 is independently selected from OR8, O-mesyl, O-tosyl, OC(O)R8, OC(O)NR8R9, NR8R9, NR8C(O)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, O(CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr and NH(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- each of R a and Rb is independently selected from H, halo and a C1-C6 alkyl;
- R a and Rb together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- (CR aRb)n is alkylene, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, uninterrupted or interrupted by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
-
- B 1 is selected from O, (CRaaRbb)m, SO2, O and NR7, wherein m is 0 or 1;
- Z is selected from (CR aaRbb)m, C(O), C(NRaa), P-ORaa, P(O)ORaa, P(O)NRaaRbb, Si(RcRd), SO, SO2, (CRaaRbb)mCO and CO(CRaaRbb)m, wherein m is 1 or 2;
- R c and Rd are independently selected from a C1-C8 alkyl, a C6-C10 aryl and a C4-C10 heterocyclic;
- R aa and Rbb are independently selected from H and a C1-C6 alkyl;
- R aa and Rbb together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- when B 1 is NR7, B1 and R6 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring wherein one or two carbons of said ring are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- when B 1 is NR7, B1 and R6 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form —N═C(R7)(RaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- R 1, R2 and X can be taken together;
-
- each of D, E, F and G is independently selected from H, halo, a C 1-C12 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl and CH2(RaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- D and E or F and G together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered cyclic or heterocyclic diradical, wherein one or two carbons of said diradical are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O) 2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- each of J, J 1 and K is independently selected from C(O)R8, C(O)NR8R9, C(O)OR8, (CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr and NH(CRaRb)nAr; wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10;
- each of L, M, Q and V is independently selected from the group S substituents;
- one or two carbons of the phenyl ring in which L, M, Q and V are attached can be replaced with nitrogen;
- R 1 and X can be taken together;
-
- R 2 and X can be taken together;
-
- R 3 is OR10;
- R 3 and X can be taken together;
-
- R 3 and Y can be taken together;
-
- R 4 is selected from H, a C(O)(C1-C18)alkyl, C(O)Ar, a OC(O)(C1-C18)alkyl and OC(O)Ar, wherein the alkyl moieties of the foregoing R4 groups are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 5 is selected from H, halo, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar, (CRaRb)nAr, OR8, O(CO)R8, OC(O)NR8R9, NR8R9, NR8C(O)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, O(CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr and NR8(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an interger ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 5 and Y can be taken together;
-
- R 6 is selected from H, a C1-C12 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl and CH2(RaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- each of R 7, R8 and R9 is independently selected from H and a C1-C12 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 8 and R9 together with the nitrogen to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, in which one or two carbons are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 10 is selected from a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar and (CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R10 is not unsubstituted methyl;
- R 11 is H or OCH3;
- R 12 and R13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C(═NR8)— or —C(═N—OR8);
- R 12 and R13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, wherein one or two carbons of said ring are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 12 is selected from H, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar and (CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 13 is selected from H, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, OR8, OC(O)R8, OC(O)(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8R9, OC(O)NR8NR8R9, OC(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, NR8R9, NR8(CO)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, NR8C(O)OR8, O(CRaRb)nAr, O(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr, NH(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr and NH(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an interger ranging from 0 to 10;
- each of R 14 and R15 is independently selected from H, a C1-C12 alkyl, an aryl-substituted C1-C12 alkyl and a heteroaryl-substituted C1-C12 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6) alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 14 and R15 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered ring, in which one or two carbons are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 17 is a C1-C20 alkyl, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R17 is not unsubstituted ethyl;
- R 18 is selected from the group consisting of an aryl, a substituted aryl, a heteroaryl, a substituted heteroaryl and a heterocycloalkyl;
- each of R 19 and R20 is independently selected from the group consisting of a C1-C12 alkenyl, a C1-C12 alkynyl, an aryl, a C3-C8 cycloalkyl, a heterocycloalkyl and a heteroaryl, wherein said alkenyl, alkynyl, aryl, cycloalkyl, heterocycloalkyl and heteroaryl are substituted or unsubstituted;
- R 19 and R20 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form a 3- to 10-membered heterocycloalkyl ring that may be substituted with one or more substituents independently selected from the group consisting of halogen, hydroxy, a C1-C3 alkoxy, a C1-C3 alkoxy-C1-C3 alkoxy, oxo, a C1-C3 alkyl, a halo-C1-C3 alkyl and a C1-C3 alkoxy-C1-C3 alkyl;
- each Ar is independently a 4- to 10-membered heterocyclic or a C 6-C10 aryl, wherein said heterocyclic and aryl groups are optionally substituted by one or more substituents independently selected from the group S substituents; and
- the group S substituents are selected from the group consisting of:
- (a) nitro;
- (b) halogens;
- (c) hydroxy;
- (d) N 3;
- (e) CN;
- (f) CHO;
- (g) C 1-C10 alkoxy;
- (h) C 1-C3 alkoxy-C1-C3 alkoxy;
- (i) oxo;
- (j) C 1-C10 alkanoyl;
- (k) C 1-C10 alkyl;
- (l) C 1-C12 alkyl substituted with an aromatic heterocyclic;
- (m) C 1-C6 alkyl substituted with O-SO2;
- (n) C 2-C10 alkenyl;
- (o) C 2-C10 alkynyl;
- (p) C 3-C10 cycloalkyl;
- (q) substituted C 3-C10 cycloalkyl;
- (r) heterocyclic;
- (s) substituted heterocyclic;
- (t) aryl;
- (u) substituted aryl;
- (v) trialkylsilyl;
- (w) —C(O)R 8;
- (x) —C(O)R 18;
- (y) —C(O)OR 8;
- (z) —C(O)NR 8R9;
- (aa) —NR 8R9;
- (bb) —NR 19R20;
- (cc) —NHC(O)R 8;
- (dd) —NHC(O)NR 8R9;
- (ee) ═N—O—R 8;
- (ff) ═N—NR 8R9;
- (gg) ═N—NR 19R20;
- (hh) ═N—R 8;
- (ii) ═N—R 18;
- (jj) ═N—NHC(O)R 8;
- (kk) ═N—NHC(O)NR 8R9;
- (ll) —C≡N; *
- (mm) —S(O) n, wherein n is 0, 1 or 2;
- (nn) —S(O) nR8, wherein n is 0, 1 or 2;
- (oo) —O—S(O) nR8, wherein n is 0, 1 or 2; and
- (pp) —SO 2NR8R9.
-
- and to pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof, wherein:
- R f is selected from H, a —C(O)-imidazolyl, a C1-C12 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, a —C(O)(C1-C18)alkyl, a —C(O)O(C1-C18)alkyl, —C(O)NR8R9 and CH2(RaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)—and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents;
- R 3 is selected from H and OR10;
- R 10 is selected from H, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar and (CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, provided that R10 is not unsubstituted methyl; and
- A, Y, R 4, R5, R7, R8, R9, R11, R12, R13, R14, R15, R17, R18, R19, R20, Ra, Rb, Ar and the group S substituents are defined as for formula 1.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein A is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH(NH 2)—, —CH2NR9—, —NR9CH2— and —C(═N—OR8)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein X is selected from —CH 2NH—, —CH2N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH2—, —C(═N—OH)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2CH2OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 2 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH and R2 is OH. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH, R2 is OH, A is H and X is selected from —CH2NH—, —CH2N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH2—, —C(═N—OH)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2CH2OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH, R2 is OH, A is F and X is selected from —CH2NH—, —CH2N(Me)—, —N(Me)CH2—, —C(═N—OH)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2CH2OMe)—, wherein the first dash of each of the foregoing X groups is attached to the C-10 carbon of the compound of formula 1 and the last dash of each group is attached to the C-8 carbon of the compound of formula 1. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein Z is CH 2 or C(═O); B1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH2; and R6 is (CH2)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein Z is CH 2 or C(═O); B1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH2; and R6 is (CH2)3Ar, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein Z is CH 2 or C(═O); B1 is selected from NH, NMe and CH2; R6 is (CH2)3Ar; and Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl and 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 3 is selected from an O(C1-C4)alkyl, OCH2CH═CH—Ar and O(CH2)nAr. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is selected from CH 2, C(O), C═S, CH(OR8), CH(OC(O)R8), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR8R9) and CH(O(CRaRb)nAr), wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10.
-
-
- wherein R 12 is H and R13 is selected from OR8, OC(O)R8, O(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8R9, OC(O)NR8NR8R9, OC(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, NR8R9, NR8(CO)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, NR8C(O)OR8, O(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, S(CRaRb)nAr, NH(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr and NH(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 13 is OH and R12 is selected from CH2N3, CH2NH2, CH2NR8(CRaRb)nAr, CH2NR8R9, CH2NR8NR8R9, CH2NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, CH2NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, CH2NR8C(O)R8, CH2NR8C(O)NR8R9, CH2NR8C(O)OR8, CH2O(CRaRb)nAr, CH2S(CRaRb)nAr and CH2NH(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 13 is OH and R12 is selected from H, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar and (CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- or —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 12 and R13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C(═N—OR8)— or —C(═N—R8)—, and all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein each of n and m is independently an integer from 1 to 6; and R 16 is selected from R8, C(O)R8, C(O)Ar, C(O)OR8(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)NR8R9, C(O)NR8NR8R9, C(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, NR8NR8R9, (CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr and (CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 4 is H or Ac. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1 wherein R 5 is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein A is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R f is selected from H, a —C(O)-imidazolyl, —C(O)OR8, —C(O)(CH2)nAr, —C(O)NR8R9 and —C(O)NR8NR8R9, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 3 is selected from OH, an O(C2-C4)alkyl, OCH2CH═CHAr and O(CH2)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 1 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein Y is selected from CH 2, C(O), C═S, CH(OR8), CH(OC(O)R8), CH(OC(O)Ar), CH(OC(O)NR8R9) and CH(O(CRaRb)nAr), wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein R 12 is H and R13 is selected from OR8, OC(O)R8, O(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8R9, OC(O)NR8NR8R9, OC(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, OC(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nAr, NR8R9, NR8(CO)R8, NR8C(O)NR8R9, NR8C(O)OR8, O(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, S(CraRb)nAr, NH(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr and N(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 13 is OH and R12 is selected from CH2N3, CH2NH2, CH2NR8(CRaRb)nAr CH2NR8R9, CH2NR8NR8R9, CH2NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, CH2NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, CH2NR8C(O)R8, CH2NR8C(O)NR8R9, CH2NR8C(O)OR8, CH2O(CRaRb)nNR8(CraRb)nAr, CH2S(CRaRb)nAr and CH2NH(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 13 is OH and R12 is selected from H, a C1-C10 alkyl, a C3-C10 alkenyl, a C3-C10 alkynyl, —C(RaRb)—C(Ra)═C(Rb)—Ar and (CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10, wherein one or two carbons of said alkyl, alkenyl and alkynyl are optionally replaced by a diradical independently selected from —O—, —S—, —S(O)—, —S(O)2—, a —N(C1-C6)alkyl- and —C(O)— and are optionally substituted by 1 to 3 substituents independently selected from the group S substituents, and all other variables are as originally defined;
- or R 12 and R13 together with the carbon to which they are attached can form —C(O)—, —C(═N—OR8)— or —C(═N—R8)—, and all other variables are as originally defined.
-
- wherein each of n and m is independently an integer from 1 to 6, and R 16 is selected from R8, C(O)R8, C(O)Ar, C(O)OR8, (CRaRb)nAr, C(O)(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)NR8R9, C(O)NR8NR8R9, C(O)NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, C(O)NR8NR8(CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, NR8NR8R9, (CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr and (CRaRb)nNR8(CRaRb)nAr, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 4 is H or Ac. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- More specific embodiments of this invention include compounds of formula 1A wherein R 5 is H or F. Within this subset of compounds, all other variables are as originally defined.
- Examples of preferred compounds of this invention include the following compounds:
- the compound of formula 1 wherein R 1 is OH; R2 is OH; A is F; X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—; R4 is H; R5 is H; and Y is CH(O-cladinose),
-
- the compound of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together form —OC(O)O—; A is F; X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—; R3 is OH; R4 is H; R5 is H; and Y is CH(O-cladinose);
- the compound of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together form —OCH2O—; A is F; X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—; R4 is H; R5 is H; and Y is CH(O-cladinose);
-
- wherein X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—; and
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH3, CH2CH2CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH═CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-pyridyl) and CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-quinolyl);
-
- wherein X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—;
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH3, CH2CH2CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH═CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-pyridyl) and CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-quinolyl);
- R 8 is selected from NH(CH2)2N(Me)CH2Ar, NH(CH2)2NHCH2Ar, O(CH2)N(Me)CH2Ar and O(CH2)2NHCH2Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, 2-methoxyphenyl, 4-methoxyphenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
-
- wherein X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—;
- R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH3, CH2CH2CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH═CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(5quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-pyridyl) and CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-quinolyl);
- R 12 is selected from H, Me, Et, propyl, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, CH2N3, CH2NH2, CH2NHMe, CH2NHEt, CH2NH-n-pr, CH2NH-cyclopropyl, CH2NH-iso-propyl, CH2NH(CH2)2NH2, CH2NH(CH2)2NHCH2Ar and CH2NH(CH2)2N(Me)CH2Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, 2-methoxyphenyl, 4-methoxyphenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
-
- wherein R 10 is selected from Et, n-Pr, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, COCH3, CH2CH2CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH═CH2-(4-pyridyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(5-quinolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH═CH-(4-benzimidazolyl), CH2CH2CH2-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH═CH-(8-quinolyl), CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-pyridyl) and CH2CH2NHCH2-(4-quinolyl);
- R 5 is H or F; and
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—;
-
- wherein B 1 is selected from NH, O and CH2;
- X is selected from —C(O)—, —CH 2NH—, —CH2NMe—, —NHCH2—, —N(Me)CH2—, —CH(NH2)—, —C(═N—OMe)— and —C(═N—OCH2O(CH2)2OMe)—;
- R 5 is H or F; and
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
-
- wherein Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F;
-
- wherein Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F;
-
- wherein Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F;
-
- wherein Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F;
-
- wherein Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl; and
- R 5 is H or F;
-
- wherein R 5 is H or F;
- D is selected from CH 2Ar, CH2NH2, CH2NHCH2Ar, CH2OH, (CH2)3Ar, CH2OCH2Ar, CH2SCH2Ar, CH2NHCH2Ar, CH2N(Me)CH2Ar and CH2OCH2—Ar; and
- Ar is selected from quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
-
- wherein R 16 is selected from H, Me, Et, n-propyl, cyclopropyl, cyclobutyl, C(O)Me, C(O)Ar, C(O)OMe, (CH2)3Ar, (CH2)2Ar, (CH2)2NHCH2Ar and (CH2)2N(Me)CH2Ar; and
- Ar is selected from phenyl, quinolin-4-yl, 7-methoxy-quinolin-4-yl, 4-phenyl-imidazol-1-yl, pyridin-4-yl, pyridin-3-yl, pyridin-2-yl, 4-pyridin-3-yl-imidazol-1-yl, phenyl, imidazo(4,5-b)pyridin-3-yl, 2-phenyl-thiazol-5-yl, 2-pyridin-3-yl-thiazol-4-yl and benzoimidazol-1-yl;
- the compound of formula 1A wherein R f is H or —C(O)-imidazolyl; A is H or F; R3 is selected from OH, OEt, O-cyclopropyl and O-n-propyl; R4 is selected from H, Ac and trimethylsilyl; R5 is H or F; and Y is selected from CH(O-cladinose), CH(O-(4″-O-acetyl)-cladinose), CH(OH), C═O and CH(OAc).
- Certain compounds of formulas 1 and 1A may contain one or more asymmetric carbons and may therefore exist in different isomeric forms. This invention includes all pure individual enantiomers and individual diastereomers of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and mixtures comprising any combination of these isomers. Each stereogenic carbon may be of the R or S configuration. In particular, the invention includes both the R and S configurations of C-2, C-8, C-9, C-10 and C-11 of the macrolide ring of formula 1. The invention further includes all E and Z configurations of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and mixtures thereof. Although specific compounds exemplified in this application may be depicted in a particular stereochemical configuration, compounds having either the opposite stereochemistry at any given chiral center or mixtures thereof are also envisioned. The compounds of formulas 1 and 1A may additionally exist as tautomers. This invention includes all such pure tautomers and mixtures thereof. The invention includes uses of any of the above compounds or mixtures of compounds.
- The compounds of this invention may be modified by appropriate functionalities to enhance selective biological properties. This invention includes all pharmaceutically acceptable derivatives or prodrugs of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A. This invention also includes all pharmaceutically acceptable salts of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A.
- The present invention includes all isotopically labelled forms of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts thereof. Such isotopically labelled compounds are useful as research or diagnostic tools.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- The present invention also relates to a pharmaceutical composition for the treatment of a bacterial or protozoal infection, or a disorder related to a bacterial or protozoal infection. This pharmaceutical composition comprises a therapeutically effective amount of a compound of formula 1 or 1A, or a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, prodrug or solvate thereof, and a pharmaceutically acceptable carrier or diluent. The pharmaceutical composition may comprise one or more additional agents having an antibiotic effect or other therapeutic or prophylactic effect.
- The present invention further includes a method of treating a bacterial infection or a protozoal infection, or a disorder related to a bacterial or protozoal infection, in humans, other mammals, fish or birds in need of such treatment. The methods of the present invention comprise administering to said human, other mammal, fish or bird a therapeutically effective amount of a compound of formula 1 or 1A, a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, prodrug or solvate thereof, or a pharmaceutical composition comprising the compound as defined above. This invention contemplates treatment methods in which the compounds of the present invention are administered either as a single agent or in combination with other therapeutic agents.
- Patients that can be treated with the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, pharmaceutically acceptable salts, solvates and prodrugs thereof, or pharmaceutical compositions comprising the compounds include mammals (particularly humans), fish and birds suffering from infections caused by various microorganisms, including Gram-positive and Gram-negative bacteria.
- As used herein, unless otherwise indicated, the term “infection(s)” includes “bacterial infection(s)”, “protozoal infection(s)” and “disorders related to bacterial infections or protozoal infections”. These terms include bacterial infections and protozoal infections that occur in mammals, fish and birds, as well as disorders related to bacterial infections or protozoal infections that may be treated or prevented by administering the compounds of the present invention. Such bacterial infections, protozoal infections and disorders related to such bacterial and protozoal infections include the following: pneumonia, otitis media, sinusitus, bronchitis, tonsillitis and mastoiditis related to infection by Streptococcus pneumoniae, Haemophilus influenzae, Moraxella catarrhalis, Staphylococcus aureus, Enterococcus faecalis, E. faecium, E. casselflavus, S. epidermidis, S. haemolyticus or Peptostreptococcus spp.; pharyngitis, rheumatic fever and glomerulonephritis related to infection by Streptococcus pyogenes, Groups C and G streptococci, Clostridium diptheriae, Corynebacterium diphtheriae or Actinobacillus haemolyticum; respiratory tract infections related to infection by Mycoplasma pneumoniae, Legionella pneumophila, Streptococcus pneumoniae, Haemophilus influenzae or Chlamydia pneumoniae; blood and tissue infections, including endocarditis and osteomyelitis, caused by S. aureus, S. haemolyticus, E. faecalis, E. faecium or E. durans, including strains resistant to known antibacterials such as, but not limited to, beta-lactams, vancomycin, aminoglycosides, quinolones, chloramphenicol, tetracylines and macrolides; uncomplicated skin and soft tissue infections and abscesses, and puerperal fever related to infection by Staphylococcus aureus, coagulase-positive staphylococci (i.e., S. epidermidis, S. hemolyticus, etc.), Streptococcus pyogenes, Streptococcus agalactiae, Streptococcal groups C-F (minute-colony streptococci), viridans streptococci, Corynebacterium minutissimum, Clostridium spp. or Bartonella henselae; uncomplicated acute urinary tract infections related to infection by Staphylococcus aureus, Staphylococcus saprophyticus, coagulase-negative staphylococcal species or Enterococcus spp.; urethritis and cervicitis; sexually transmitted diseases related to infection by Chlamydia trachomatis, Haemophilus ducreyi, Treponema pallidum, Ureaplasma urealyticum or Neiserria gonorrheae; toxin diseases related to infection by S. aureus (food poisoning and toxic shock syndrome), or Groups A, B, and C streptococci; ulcers related to infection by Helicobacter pylori; systemic febrile syndromes related to infection by Borrelia recurrentis; Lyme disease related to infection by Borrelia burgdorferi; conjunctivitis, keratitis and dacrocystitis related to infection by Chlamydia trachomatis, Neisseria gonorrhoeae, S. aureus, S. pneumoniae, S. pyogenes, H. influenzae or Listeria spp.; disseminated Mycobacterium avium complex (MAC) disease related to infection by Mycobacterium avium or Mycobacterium intracellulare; infections caused by Mycobacterium tuberculosis, M. leprae, M. paratuberculosis, M. kansasii or M. chelonei; gastroenteritis related to infection by Campylobacter jejuni; intestinal protozoa related to infection by Cryptosporidium spp.; odontogenic infection related to infection by viridans streptococci; persistent cough related to infection by Bordetella pertussis; gas gangrene related to infection by Clostridium perfringens or Bacteroides spp.; and atherosclerosis or cardiovascular disease related to infection by Helicobacter pyloei or Chlamydia pneumoniae. Bacterial infections and protozoal infections, and disorders related to such infections, that may be treated or prevented in animals include the following: bovine respiratory disease related to infection by P. haemolytica, P. multocida, Mycoplasma bovis or Bordetella spp.; cow enteric disease related to infection by E. coli or protozoa (i.e., coccidia, cryptosporidia, etc.); dairy cow mastitis related to infection by S. aureus, Strep. uberis, Streptococcus agalactiae, Streptococcus dysgalactiae, Klebsiella spp., Corynebacterium or Enterococcus spp.; swine respiratory disease related to infection by A. pleuro., P. multocida or Mycoplasma spp.; swine enteric disease related to infection by E. coli, Lawsonia intracellularis, Salmonella or Serpulina hyodysinteriae; cow footrot related to infection by Fusobacterium spp.; cow metritis related to infection by E. coli; cow hairy warts related to infection by Fusobacterium necrophorum or Bacteroides nodosus; cow pink-eye related to infection by Moraxella bovis; cow premature abortion related to infection by protozoa (i.e. neosporium); urinary tract infection in dogs and cats related to infection by E. coli; skin and soft tissue infections in dogs and cats related to infection by S. epidermidis, S. intermedius, coagulase neg. Staphylococcus or P. multocida; and dental or mouth infections in dogs and cats related to infection by Alcaligenes spp., Bacteroides spp., Clostridium spp., Enterobacter spp., Eubacterium, Peptostreptococcus, Porphyromonas or Prevotella. Other bacterial infections, protozoal infections and disorders related to bacterial or protozoal infections that may be treated or prevented in accord with the method of the present invention are referred to in J. P. Sanford et al., “The Sanford Guide To Antimicrobial Therapy,” 26th Edition (Antimicrobial Therapy, Inc., 1996).
- The present invention comprises novel compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof that are antibacterial and/or antiprotozoal agents. The present invention further comprises methods of preparing the claimed compounds, pharmaceutical compositions comprising the compounds, and methods of treatment using the compounds and compositions.
- In the chemical structures depicted herein, a wavy line indicates that the stereochemistry at the chiral center to which the wavy line is connected is either an R or an S configuration where the wavy line is connected to a carbon atom. In the compound of formula 1, the wavy lines at positions 2, 8, 10 and 11 of the macrolide ring indicate that these carbons have either an R or an S configuration. A wavy line connected to an oxime nitrogen indicates that the oxime geometry is in an E or Z configuration.
- The term “halo”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, refers to fluoro, chloro, bromo or iodo. Preferred halo groups are fluoro, chloro and bromo.
- The term “alkyl”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes saturated monovalent hydrocarbon radicals having straight, cyclic or branched moieties, or a combination of the foregoing moieties. Said alkyl group may include one or two double or triple bonds. For cycloalkyls, at least three carbon atoms are required in said alkyl group. Said cycloalkyls may include mono- or polycyclic alkyl radicals. Examples of alkyl radicals include, but are not limited to, methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, isobutyl, sec-butyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isoamyl, n-hexyl, cyclohexyl, adamantyl, norbornyl and the like.
- The term “alkenyl”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes straight-chain or branched-chain mono- or poly-unsaturated aliphatic hydrocarbon radicals containing at least one carbon-carbon double bond. Examples of alkenyl radicals include, but are not limited to, ethenyl, E- and Z-propenyl, isopropenyl, E- and Z-butenyl, E- and Z-isobutenyl, E- and Z-pentenyl, E- and Z-hexenyl, E,E-, E,Z-, Z,E- and Z,Z-hexadienyl and the like.
- The term “alkynyl”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes straight-chain or branched-chain mono- or poly-unsaturated aliphatic hydrocarbon radicals containing at least one carbon-carbon triple bond. Examples of alkynyl radicals include, but are not limited to, ethynyl, E- and Z-propynyl, isopropynyl, E- and Z-butynyl, E- and Z-isobutynyl, E- and Z-pentynyl, E- and Z-hexynyl and the like.
- The term “alkoxy”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes alkyl ether radicals, wherein the term “alkyl” is as defined above. Examples of suitable alkyl ether radicals include, but are not limited to, methoxy, ethoxy, n-propoxy, isopropoxy, n-butoxy, isobutoxy, sec-butoxy, tert-butoxy and the like.
- The term “alkanoyl”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes —C(O)-alkyl groups wherein “alkyl” is as defined above.
- The term “aryl”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes an organic radical derived from an aromatic hydrocarbon by the removal of one hydrogen. Examples of aryl radicals include, but are not limited to, phenyl, naphthyl, indenyl, indanyl, azulenyl, fluorenyl, anthracenyl and the like.
- The term “substituted”, whether preceded by the term “optionally” or not, and substitutions contained in formulas of this invention refer to the replacement of one or more hydrogen radicals in a given structure with the radical of a specified substituent. When more than one position in a given structure may be substituted with more than one substituent selected from a specified group, the substituents may be either the same or different at every position. In some cases, two positions in a given structure may be substituted with one shared substituent. Most preferred substituents are those that enhance antibacterial or antiprotozoal activity.
- As used herein, unless otherwise indicated, “Ac” indicates an acetyl group.
- As used herein, unless otherwise indicated, “Me” indicates a methyl group.
- As used herein, unless otherwise indicated, “Et” indicates an ethyl group.
- The term “4- to 10-membered heterocyclic”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes aromatic and non-aromatic heterocyclic groups containing one or more heteroatoms, each selected from O, S and N, wherein each heterocyclic group has from 4 to 10 atoms in its ring system. Non-aromatic heterocyclic groups include groups having only 3 atoms in their ring system, but aromatic heterocyclic groups must have at least 5 atoms in their ring system. The heterocyclic groups include benzo-fused ring systems and ring systems substituted with one or more oxo moieties. An example of a 4-membered heterocyclic group is azetidinyl (derived from azetidine). An example of a 5-membered heterocyclic group is thiazolyl, and an example of a 10-membered heterocyclic group is quinolinyl. Examples of non-aromatic heterocyclic groups are pyrrolidinyl, tetrahydrofuranyl, tetrahydrothienyl, tetrahydropyranyl, tetrahydrothiopyranyl, piperidino, morpholino, thiomorpholino, thioxanyl, piperazinyl, azetidinyl, oxetanyl, thietanyl, homopiperidinyl, oxepanyl, thiepanyl, oxazepinyl, diazepinyl, thiazepinyl, 1,2,3,6-tetrahydropyridinyl, 2-pyrrolinyl, 3-pyrrolinyl, indolinyl, 2H-pyranyl, 4H-pyranyl, dioxanyl, 1,3-dioxolanyl, pyrazolinyl, dithianyl, dithiolanyl, dihydropyranyl, dihydrothienyl, dihydrofuranyl, pyrazolidinyl, imidazolinyl, imidazolidinyl, 3-azabicyclo[3.1.0]hexanyl, 3-azabicyclo[4.1.0]heptanyl, 3H-indolyl and quinolizinyl. Examples of aromatic heterocyclic groups are pyridinyl, imidazolyl, pyrimidinyl, pyrazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazinyl, tetrazolyl, furyl, thienyl, isoxazolyl, thiazolyl, oxazolyl, isothiazolyl, pyrrolyl, quinolinyl, isoquinolinyl, indolyl, benzimidazolyl, benzofuranyl, cinnolinyl, indazolyl, indolizinyl, phthalazinyl, pyridazinyl, triazinyl, isoindolyl, pteridinyl, purinyl, oxadiazolyl, thiadiazolyl, furazanyl, benzofurazanyl, benzothiophenyl, benzothiazolyl, benzoxazolyl, quinazolinyl, quinoxalinyl, naphthyridinyl and furopyridinyl. The foregoing groups, as derived from the compounds listed above, may be C-attached or N-attached where such is possible. For instance, a group derived from pyrrole may be pyrrol-1-yl (N-attached) or pyrrol-3-yl (C-attached).
- The term “protecting group” refers to a suitable chemical group that may be attached to a functional group and removed at a later stage to reveal the intact functional group. Examples of suitable protecting groups for various functional groups are described in T. W. Greene and P. G. M Wuts, Protective Groups in Organic Synthesis, 2d Ed., John Wiley and Sons (1991); L. Fieser and M. Fieser, Fieser and Fieser's Reagents for Organic Synthesis, John Wiley and Sons (1994); and L. Paquette, ed. Encyclodedia of Reagents for Organic Synthesis, John Wiley and Sons (1995).
- The term “acid” refers to an electron pair acceptor.
- The term “base” refers to an electron pair donor.
- The term “therapeutically effective amount” refers to an amount effective in treating or ameliorating a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, or a disorder involving a bacterial or protozoal infection, in a patient, either as monotherapy or in combination with other agents. The term “treating” as used herein refers to the alleviation of symptoms of a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, or a particular disorder involving a bacterial infection or protozoal infection, in a patient, or the improvement of an ascertainable measurement associated with such a disorder. As used herein, the term “patient” refers to mammals (including humans), fish and birds suffering from a bacterial infection or a protozoal infection, or a disorder involving a bacterial infection or protozoal infection.
- The term “treating”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, means reversing, alleviating, inhibiting the progress of, or preventing the disorder or condition to which such term applies, or one or more symptoms of such disorder or condition. The term “treatment”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, refers to the act of treating as “treating” is defined immediately above.
- The term “pharmaceutically acceptable carrier” refers to a carrier that may be administered to a patient together with a compound of this invention. The carrier does not destroy the pharmacological activity of the compound and is nontoxic when administered in doses sufficient to deliver a therapeutic amount of the compound.
- As used herein, the compounds of this invention, including the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A, are defined to include pharmaceutically acceptable derivatives or prodrugs thereof. A “pharmaceutically acceptable derivative or prodrug” means any pharmaceutically acceptable salt, ester, salt of an ester or other derivative of a compound of this invention that, upon administration to a recipient, is capable of providing (directly or indirectly) a compound of this invention or a metabolite or residue thereof. Particularly favored derivatives and prodrugs are those that increase the bioavailability of the compounds of this invention when such compounds are administered to a patient (e.g., by allowing an orally administered compound to be more readily absorbed into the blood), enhance delivery of the parent compound to a given biological compartment, increase solubility to allow administration by injection, alter metabolism or alter rate of excretion.
- Compounds of formulas 1 and 1A can be converted into prodrugs through, for example, free amino, amido, hydroxy or carboxylic groups. Examples of such prodrugs include compounds wherein an amino acid residue, or a polypeptide chain of two or more (e.g., two, three or four) amino acid residues is covalently joined through an amide or ester bond to a free amino, hydroxy or carboxylic acid group of a compound of formula 1 or 1A. The amino acid residues include but are not limited to the 20 naturally occurring amino acids commonly designated by three letter symbols and also include 4-hydroxyproline, hydroxylysine, demosine, isodemosine, 3-methylhistidine, norvalin, beta-alanine, gamma-aminobutyric acid, citrulline homocysteine, homoserine, ornithine and methionine sulfone.
- Additional types of prodrugs are also encompassed. For instance, free carboxyl groups can be derivatized as amides or alkyl esters. The amide and ester moieties may incorporate groups including but not limited to ether, amine and carboxylic acid functionalities. Free hydroxy groups may be derivatized using groups including but not limited to hemisuccinates, phosphate esters, dimethylaminoacetates and phosphoryloxymethyloxycarbonyls, as outlined in D. Fleisher et al., Advanced Drug Delivery Reviews, vol. 19, p. 115 (1996). Carbamate prodrugs of hydroxy and amino groups are also included, as are carbonate prodrugs and sulfate esters of hydroxy groups. Derivatization of hydroxy groups as (acyloxy)methyl and (acyloxy)ethyl ethers wherein the acyl group may be an alkyl ester, optionally substituted with groups including but not limited to ether, amine and carboxylic acid functionalities, or where the acyl group is an amino acid ester as described above, are also encompassed. Prodrugs of this type are described in R. P. Robinson et al., J. Medicinal Chemistry, vol. 39, p. 10 (1996).
- The compounds of this invention also include pharmaceutically acceptable salts of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A. The term “pharmaceutically acceptable salt(s)”, as used herein, unless otherwise indicated, includes salts of acidic or basic groups that may be present in the compounds of the present invention.
- The compounds of the present invention that are basic in nature are capable of forming a wide variety of salts with various inorganic and organic acids. The acids that may be used to prepare pharmaceutically acceptable acid addition salts of such basic compounds of formulas 1 and 1A are those that form non-toxic acid addition salts, i.e., salts containing pharmacologically acceptable anions, such as the hydrochloride, hydrobromide, hydroiodide, nitrate, sulfate, bisulfate, phosphate, acid phosphate, isonicotinate, acetate, lactate, salicylate, citrate, acid citrate, tartrate, pantothenate, bitartrate, ascorbate, succinate, maleate, gentisinate, fumarate, gluconate, glucuronate, saccharate, formate, benzoate, glutamate, methanesulfonate, ethanesulfonate, benzenesulfonate, p-toluenesulfonate and pamoate (i.e., 1,1′-methylene-bis-(2-hydroxy-3--naphthoate)) salts. The compounds of the present invention that include a basic moiety, such as an amino group, may form pharmaceutically acceptable salts with various amino acids, in addition to the acids mentioned above.
- Those compounds of the present invention that are acidic in nature are capable of forming base salts with various pharmacologically acceptable cations. Examples of such salts include the alkali metal or alkaline earth metal salts and, particularly, the calcium, magnesium, sodium and potassium salts of the compounds of the present invention.
- The subject invention also includes isotopically-labelled compounds and pharmaceutically acceptable salts thereof that are identical to those recited in formulas 1 and 1A, but for the fact that one or more atoms are replaced by an atom having an atomic mass or mass number different from the atomic mass or mass number usually found in nature. Examples of isotopes that can be incorporated into compounds of this invention include isotopes of hydrogen, carbon, nitrogen, oxygen, phosphorous, fluorine and chlorine, such as 2H, 3H, 13C, 14C, 15N, 18O, 17O, 35S, 18F and 36Cl, respectively. Compounds of the present invention, prodrugs thereof, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts of said compounds or of said prodrugs that contain the aforementioned isotopes and/or other isotopes of other atoms are within the scope of this invention. Certain isotopically labelled compounds of the present invention, such as those into which radioactive isotopes such as 3H and 14C are incorporated, are useful in drug and/or substrate tissue distribution assays. Tritiated, i.e., 3H, and carbon-14, i.e., 14C, isotopes are particularly preferred for their ease of preparation and detectability. Substitution with heavier isotopes such as deuterium, i.e., 2H, can afford certain therapeutic advantages resulting from greater metabolic stability, for example, increased in vivo half-life or reduced dosage requirements, and hence may be preferred in some circumstances. Isotopically labelled compounds of formulas 1 and 1A of this invention and prodrugs thereof can generally be prepared by carrying out the procedures disclosed in the Schemes and/or in the Examples below and substituting a readily available isotopically labelled reagent for a non-isotopically labelled reagent.
- The compounds of the present invention are readily prepared. Starting materials useful for the preparation of the compounds of formulas 1 and 1A can be prepared using methods such as those described in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15, 1999; and WO 99/35157, published Jul. 15, 1999; all of which are incorporated herein by reference in their entirety. In particular, starting materials may be prepared by fermenting suitable organisms. Production of such starting materials involves the manipulation of polyketide biosynthetic genes or portions of them, which may be derived from different polyketide biosynthetic gene clusters.
- Polyketides are a large and structurally diverse class of natural products that includes many compounds possessing antibiotic or other pharmacological properties, such as erythromycin, tetracyclines, rapamycin, avermectin, polyether ionophores and FK506. In particular, polyketides are abundantly produced by Streptomyces and related actinomycete bacteria. They are synthesized by the repeated stepwise condensation of acylthioesters in a manner analogous to that of fatty-acid biosynthesis. The greater structural diversity found among natural polyketides arises from the selection of (usually) acetate or propionate as “starter” or “extender” units, and from the differing degree of processing of the β-keto group observed after each condensation. Examples of processing steps include reduction to β-hydroxyacyl-, reduction followed by dehydration to 2-enoyl-, and complete reduction to the saturated acylthioester. The stereochemical outcome of these processing steps is specified for each cycle of chain extension.
- The biosynthesis of polyketides is initiated by a group of chain-forming enzymes known as polyketide synthases. Two classes of polyketide synthase (“PKS”) have been described in actinomycetes. One class, designated Type I, includes the PKS's for the macrolides erythromycin, oleandomycin, avermectin and rapamycin. In Type I PKS's, a different set or “module” of enzymes is responsible for each cycle of polyketide chain extension (Cortes, J. et al., Nature, vol. 348, pp. 176-178 (1990); Donadio, S. et al., Science, vol. 252, pp. 675-679 (1991) Swan, D. G. et al., Mol. Gen. Genet., vol. 242, pp. 358-362 (1994); MacNeil, D. J. et al., Gene, vol. 115, pp. 119-125 (1992); Schwecke, T. et al., Proc. Natl. Acad. Sci. USA, vol. 92, pp. 7839-7843 (1995)).
- The term “extension module” as used herein refers to the set of contiguous domains, from a ketoacyl-ACP synthase (“AKS”) domain to the next acyl carrier protein (“ACP”) domain, that accomplishes one cycle of polyketide chain extension. The term “loading module” is used to refer to any group of contiguous domains that accomplishes the loading of the starter unit onto the PKS, rendering it available to the βketoacylsynthase (“KS”) domain of the first extension module. The length of the polyketide formed has been altered, in the case of erythromycin biosynthesis, through specific relocation of the enzymatic domain of the erythromycin-producing PKS that contains the chain-releasing thioesterase/cyclase activity (Cortés et al., Science, vol. 268, pp. 1487-1489 (1995); Kao, C. M. et al., J. Am. Chem. Soc., vol. 117, pp. 9105-9106 (1995)).
- As noted in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, the Type I PKS gene assembly encodes a loading module that is followed by extension modules. The genes for the erythromycin-producing PKS (known as 6-deoxyerythronolide B synthase, “DEBS”) contain three open reading frames that encode the DEBS polypeptides. The genes are organized in six repeated units designated modules. The first open reading frame encodes the first multi-enzyme or cassette (DEBS1), which consists of three modules: the loading module and two extension modules (modules 1 and 2). The loading module comprises an AT and an ACP.
- The DEBS loading module has a slightly broader specificity than propionate only. In particular, acetate starter units are used both in vitro and in vivo, when the PKS containing this loading module is part of a PKS that is expressed either in the natural host for erythromycin production, Saccharopolyspora erythraea (see, for example, Cortés, J. et al., Science, vol. 268, pp. 1487-1489 (1995)), or in a heterologous host such as Saccharopolyspora coelicolor (Kao, C. M. et al., J. Am. Chem. Soc., vol. 116, pp. 11612-11613 (1994); Brown, M. J. B. et al., J. Chem. Soc. Chem. Commun., pp. 1517-1519 (1995)). In vitro experiments using purified DEBS1-TE have demonstrated that propionyl-CoA and acetyl-CoA are alternative substrates that efficiently supply propionate and acetate units, respectively, to the loading module (Wiessmann, K. E. H. et al., Chemistry and Biology, vol. 2, pp. 583-589 (1995); Pieper, R. et al., J. Am. Chem. Soc., vol. 117, pp. 11373-11374 (1995)). The outcome of the competition between acetate and propionate starter units is influenced by the respective intracellular concentrations of propionyl-CoA and acetyl-CoA prevailing in the host cell used (see, for example, Kao, C. M. et al., Science, vol. 265, pp. 509-512 (1994); Pereda, A. et al., Microbiology, vol. 144, pp. 543-553 (1995)). It also depends upon the level of expression of the host PKS. As disclosed for example in International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, when recombinant DEBS or another hybrid PKS containing the DEBS loading module is overexpressed in S. erythraea, the products are generally mixtures whose components differ only in the presence of either an acetate or a propionate starter unit.
- In-frame deletion of the DNA encoding part of the ketoreductase domain of module 5 in DEBS has been shown to lead to the formation of erythromycin analogues 5,6-dideoxy-3-mycarosyl-5-oxoerythronolide B, 5,6-dideoxy-5-oxoerythronolide B and 5,6-dideoxy-6,6-epoxy-5-oxoerythronolide B (Donadio, S. et al., Science, vol. 252, pp. 675-679 (1991)). Likewise, alteration of active-site residues in the enoylreductase domain of module 4 in DEBS, by genetic engineering of the corresponding PKS-encoding DNA and its introduction into S. erythraea, has been shown to lead to the production of 6,7-anhydroerythromycin C (Donadio S. et al., Proc. Natl. Acad. Sci. USA, vol. 90, pp. 7119-7123 (1993)). International Application WO 93/13663, which is incorporated herein by reference in its entirety, describes additional types of DEBS gene manipulation that are capable of producing altered polyketides. However, many such attempts have been reported unproductive (Hutchinson C. R. and Fujii, I., Annu. Rev. Microbiol., vol. 49, pp. 201-238, at p. 231 (1995)).
- The complete DNA sequence has been disclosed for the genes from Streptomyces hygroscopicus that encode the modular Type I PKS governing the biosynthesis of rapamycin, a macrocyclic immunosuppressant polyketide (Schwecke, T. et al., Proc. Natl. Acad. Sci. USA, vol. 92, pp. 7839-7843 (1995)). This DNA sequence has been deposited in the EMBL/Genbank Database under the accession number X86780.
- DNA sequences have also been disclosed for several Type I PKS gene clusters that govern the production of 16-membered macrolide polyketides, including the tylosin PKS from Streptomyces fradiae (EP 0 791 655 A2), the niddamycin PKS from Streptomyces caelestis (Kavakas, S. J. et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 179, pp. 7515-7522 (1998)) and the spiramycin PKS from Streptomyces ambofaciens (EP 0 791 655 A2). The loading modules of these PKS gene clusters differ from the loading modules of DEBS and of the avermectin PKS in that they include a domain resembling the KS domains of the extension modules in addition to the usual AT domain and ACP. The additional N-terminal KS-like domain has been named KSq, because it differs in each case from an extension KS by possessing a glutamine residue (Q in single letter notation) in place of the active site cysteine residue essential for β-ketoacyl-ACP synthase activity. The abbreviation ATq is used here simply to distinguish the AT domains found immediately C-terminal of KSq from extension AT's; the label has no other significance.
- The PKS's for certain 14-membered macrolides (particularly, the oleandomycin PKS from Streptomyces antibioticus) and also the PKS's for certain polyether ionophore polyketides (particularly, the putative monensin PKS from Streptomyces cinnamonensis), similarly possess a loading domain comprising a KSq domain, an ATq domain and an ACP.
- The KSq domain of the tylosin PKS and the associated ATq domain together are responsible for the highly specific production of propionate starter units. That is, the ATq is specific for the loading of methylmalonyl-CoA, and the KSq is responsible for the highly specific decarboxylation of the enzyme-bound methylmalonate unit to form a propionate unit. This proprionate unit is attached to the ACP domain of the loading module and appropriately placed to be transferred to the KS of extension module 1 for the initiation of chain extension. In a like manner, the ATq and the adjacent KSq of the spiramycin and niddamycin PKS's are responsible for the specific loading of malonate units and for their subsequent specific decarboxylation to provide acetate starter units for polyketide chain extension.
- The second class of PKS, designated Type II, includes the synthases for aromatic compounds. Type II PKS's contain a single set of enzymatic activities for chain extension, and these are re-used as appropriate in successive cycles (Bibb, M. J. et al., EMBO J., vol. 8, pp. 2727-2736 (1989); Sherman, D. H. et al., EMBO J., vol. 8, pp. 2717-2725 (1989); Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., J. Biol. Chem., vol. 267, pp. 19278-19290 (1992)). The “extender” units for the Type II PKS's are usually acetate units. The presence of specific cyclases dictates the preferred pathway for cyclisation of the completed chain into an aromatic product (Hutchinson, C. R. and Fujii, I., Annu. Rev. Microbiol., vol. 49, pp. 201-238 (1995)).
- The minimal number of domains required for polyketide chain extension on a Type II PKS when expressed in a S. coelicolor host cell has been defined, as for example in International Application WO 95/08548, as containing the following three polypeptides, which are products of the actI genes: (1) a KS; (2) a polypeptide termed the CLF, with end-to-end amino acid sequence similarity to the KS, but in which the essential active-site residue of the KS, a cysteine residue, is substituted either by a glutamine residue or, in the case of the PKS for a spore pigment such as the whiE gene product (Chater, K. F. and Davis, N. K., Mol. Microbiol., vol. 4, pp. 1679-1691 (1990)), by a glutamic acid residue; and (3) an ACP.
- Hybrid polyketides have been obtained by the introduction of clones containing DNA coding for one Type II PKS into another strain containing a different Type II PKS gene cluster. For example, DNA derived from the gene cluster for actinorhodin, a blue-pigmented polyketide from S. coelicolor, has been introduced into an anthraquinone polyketide-producing strain of Streptomyces galileus (Bartel, P. L. et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 172, pp. 4816-4826 (1990)).
- In addition, International Application WO 95/08548 describes the production of hybrid polyketides by replacement of actinorhodin PKS genes with heterologous DNA from other Type II PKS gene clusters. International Application WO 95/08548 also describes the construction of a strain of S. coelicolor that substantially lacks the native gene cluster for actinorhodin, and the use in that strain of a plasmid vector pRM5 derived from the low-copy number vector SCP2* isolated from S. coelicolor (Bibb, M. J. and Hopwood, D. A., J. Gen. Microbiol., vol. 126, p. 427 (1981)) and in which heterologous PKS-encoding DNA may be expressed under the control of the divergent actI/actIII promoter region of the actinorhodin gene cluster (Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., J. Biol. Chem., vol. 267, pp. 19278-19290 (1992)). The plasmid pRM5 also contains DNA from the actinorhodin biosynthetic gene cluster encoding the gene for a specific activator protein, ActII-orf4. The ActII-orf4 protein is required for transcription of the genes placed under the control of the actI/actII bidirectional promoter and activates gene expression during the transition from growth to stationary phase in the vegetative mycelium (Hallam, S. E. et al., Gene, vol. 74, pp. 305-320 (1988)).
- Type II clusters in Streptomyces are known to be activated by pathway-specific activator genes (Narva, K. E. and Feitelson, J. S., J. Bacteriol., vol. 172, pp. 326-333 (1990); Stutzman-Engwall, K. J. et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 174, pp. 144-154 (1992); Fernandez-Moreno, M. A. et al., Cell, vol. 66, pp. 769-780 (1991); Takano, E. et al., Mol. Microbiol., vol. 6, pp. 2797-2804 (1992); Takano, E. et al., Mol. Microbiol., vol. 7, pp. 837-845 (1992)). The DnrI gene product complements a mutation in the actIII-orf4 gene of S. coelicolor, implying that DnrI and ActII-orf4 proteins act on similar targets. A gene (srmR) has been described (EP 0 524 832 A2) that is located near the Type I PKS gene cluster for the macrolide polyketide spiramycin. This gene specifically activates the production of the macrolide antibiotic spiramycin, but no other examples have been found of such a gene. Also, no homologues of the ActII-orf4/DnrI/RedD family of activators have been described that act on Type I PKS genes.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15,1999; and WO 99/35157, published Jul. 15, 1999, describe the construction of hybrid PKS gene assemblies and the use of such assemblies to provide a variety of polyketides useful as starting materials for the preparation of the compounds of the present invention. For example, International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes in general terms the production of a hybrid PKS gene assembly comprising a loading module and at least one extension module. PKS gene modules can be treated as building blocks for the construction of enzyme systems, and thus novel erythromycin products, of desired types. This generally involves the cutting out and assembly of modules and multi-module groupings. Logical places for making and breaking intermodular connections are in the linking regions between modules. However, it may be preferable to make cuts and joins actually within domains (i.e., the enzyme-coding portions), close to the edges thereof. The DNA is highly conserved here among all modular PKS's, and this may aid in the construction of hybrids that can be transcribed. It also may assist in maintaining the spacing of the active sites of the encoded enzymes, which can be important. For example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes production of a hybrid gene by replacement of the ery loading module with an avr loading module, in which the ery module together with a small amount of the following KS domain is removed. The start of the KS domain (well spaced from the active site) is highly conserved and therefore provides a suitable splicing site as an alternative to the linker region between the loading domain and the start of the KS domain. The excised ery module is then replaced by an avr loading module.
- In fact, when substituting a loading module, it may be desirable to replace not just the loading module domains (generally AT and ACP), but also the KS at the start of the following extension module. Typically, the excised loading module would have provided a propionate starter, and the replacement is intended to provide one or more different starters. Propionate, however, may feed into the KS of the extension module from a propionate pool in the host cell, leading to dilution of the desired products. This can largely be prevented by substituting an extended loading module that includes all or most of the KS domain. The splice site may be in the end region of the KS gene, early in the following AT gene or in the linker region between them.
- Different types of hybrid PKS gene assemblies can be constructed, to provide a corresponding variety of novel polyketides useful as starting materials in the present invention. For example, International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes construction of a hybrid PKS gene assembly containing a wide-specificity loading module (see also Marsden, A. F. A. et al., Science, vol. 279, pp. 199-202 (1998)). In particular, International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes grafting of the wide-specificity avr loading module onto the first multienzyme component of DEBS in place of the normal loading module. International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes certain novel polyketides that can be prepared using this hybrid PKS gene assembly.
- Patent Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, further describes the construction of a hybrid PKS gene assembly by grafting of the loading module for the rapamycin PKS onto the first multienzyme component of DEBS in place of the normal loading module. The loading module of the rapamycin PKS differs from the loading modules of DEBS and the avermectin PKS in that it comprises a CoA ligase domain, an enoylreductase (“ER”) domain and an ACP. Suitable organic acids including the natural starter unit 3,4-dihydroxycyclohexane carboxylic acid may be activated in situ on the PKS loading domain, with or without reduction by the ER domain transferred to the ACP for intramolecular loading of the KS of extension module 1.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, teaches that it is possible to determine the specificity of the natural loading module for unnatural starter units and to use a loading module with relaxed specificity to generate novel polyketides. Thus, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes the unexpected ability of the ery loading module to incorporate unnatural carboxylic acids and derivatives thereof to produce novel erythromycins in erythromycin-producing strains containing only DEBS genes.
- One may also make alterations within a product polyketide by replacing an extension module with one that provides a ketide unit with a different oxidation state and/or with a different stereochemistry. It has generally been assumed that the stereochemistry of the methyl groups in the polyketide chain is determined by the AT. In fact, this stereochemistry is a feature of other domains of the PKS and thus open to variation only by replacement of those domains, individually or by module replacement. Methyl and other substituents can be added or removed by AT domain replacement or total module replacement.
- It is possible to combine the technique of extension-module replacement with the technique of loading-module replacement or the use of the relaxed substrate specificity of the ery loading module to produce a wide range of novel erythromycins. International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes the use of such techniques to produce novel erythromycins in non-transformed organisms. International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, also describes gene assemblies, vectors containing such gene assemblies, and transformant organisms that can express them to produce novel erythromycins.
- International Application WO 00/00500, PUBLISHED Jan. 6, 2000, teaches that one may construct a hybrid PKS gene assembly by replacing the genetic material encoding the natural starter unit with genes coding for a desirable starter unit. This technique can be used to prepare 14-membered macrolides with the desired starter unit, while minimizing the formation of by-products containing a different starter unit. In particular, International Application WO 00/00500, PUBLISHED Jan. 6, 2000, discloses a method of synthesizing novel, 14-membered polyketides having substantially exclusively an acetate starter unit by providing a PKS multienzyme incorporating a loading module of the form KSq-ATq-ACP that specifically provides the desired acetate starter unit. This method may comprise providing nucleic acid encoding the PKS multienzyme and introducing it into an organism where it can be expressed. In addition, additional methods may be disclosed in WO 00/00618, published Jan. 6, 2000, which is herein incorporated by reference.
- In the loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP, the domains or portions of them may be derived from the same or from different sources and may comprise either natural or engineered domains. For example, the ATq domain can be replaced by an AT domain derived from any extension module of a Type I PKS having specificity for the loading of malonate units, so long as the KSq domain is chosen to have a matching specificity towards malonate units. Particularly suitable for this purpose are components of the PKS's for the biosynthesis of erythromycin, methylmycin, oleandomycin, tylosin, spiramycin, midecamycin and niddamycin, for all of which the gene and modular organization is known at least in part. Particularly suitable sources of the genes encoding a loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP are the loading modules of oleandomycin, spiramycin, niddamycin, methylmycin and monensin, which are specific for the loading of malonate units that are subsequently decarboxylated to acetate starter units.
- Alternatively, International Application WO 00/00500, PUBLISHED Jan. 6, 2000, teaches that the KSq domain in a loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP may be substituted by a CLF polypeptide of a Type II PKS. The CLF, in addition to any other activities that it may possess, is an analogue of the KSq domain and can act as a decarboxylase toward bound malonate units.
- The loading module of the type KSq-ATq-ACP may be linked to a hybrid PKS produced for example as in International Applications WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, and WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998. It is particularly useful to link such a loading module to gene assemblies encoding hybrid PKS's that produce novel derivatives of 14-membered macrolides.
- As described in, for example, International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, the production of novel polyketides for use as starting materials in the present invention may also involve the use of transformant organisms that are capable of modifying the initial products, e.g., by carrying out all or some of the biosynthetic modifications normal in the production of erythromycins. Use may be made of mutant organisms in which some of the normal pathways are blocked, e.g., to produce products without one or more “natural” hydroxy groups or sugar groups. See, for instance, International Application WO 91/16334 or Weber et al., J. Bacteriol., vol. 164, pp. 425-433 (1985), both of which are incorporated herein by reference in their entirety. Alternatively, use may be made of organisms in which some of the normal pathways are overexpressed, to overcome potential rate-limiting steps in the production of the desired product. See, for example, International Application WO 97/06266, which is incorporated herein by reference in its entirety.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15, 1999; WO 99/35157 and International Application WO 00/00500, PUBLISHED Jan. 6, 2000, describe a variety of novel erythromycin analogues obtainable by means of the previous aspects. These applications also describe methods for the production of such novel polyketides. In the simplest method, unnatural starter units (preferably, but not restricted to the carboxylic acid analogues of the unnatural starter units) are introduced to untransformed organisms that are capable of producing erythromycins. A preferred approach involves the introduction of a starter unit into a fermentation broth of an erythromycin-producing organism. This approach is more effective for transformed organisms capable of producing erythromycins. Alternatively, the starter unit analogue can be introduced to preparations of untransformed or transformed erythromycin-producing organisms, for example, fractionated or unfractionated broken-cell preparations.
- In another method, one or more segments of DNA encoding individual modules or domains within a heterologous Type I PKS (the “donor” PKS) may be used to replace the DNA encoding individual modules or domains, respectively, within the DEBS genes of an erythromycin-producing organism. Loading modules and extension modules drawn from natural or non-natural PKS's are suitable for this “donor” PKS. Particularly suitable for this purpose are components of the Type I PKS's for the biosynthesis of erythromycin, rapamycin, avermectin, tetronasin, oleandomycin, monensin, amphotericin and rifamycin, for which the gene and modular organization is known through gene sequence analysis, at least in part. Particularly favorable examples of the loading modules of the donor PKS are loading modules showing a relaxed specificity, for example, the loading module of the avermectin-producing PKS of Streptomyces avermitilis; loading modules possessing an unusual specificity, for example, the loading modules of the rapamycin-, FK506- and ascomycin-producing PKS's, all of which naturally accept a shikimate-derived starter unit; or loading modules that preferentially yield polypeptides with a desired starter unit such as acetate, for example, loading modules of the type KSq-ATq-ACP. Unexpectedly, when cultured under suitable conditions, both the untransformed and genetically engineered erythromycin-producing organisms have been found to produce non-natural erythromycins, and, where appropriate, the products are found to undergo the same processing as the natural erythromycin.
- An additional method calls for the introduction of a plasmid containing “donor” PKS DNA into a host cell. The host cell may simply harbor the plasmid, or the plasmid may integrate into the genome of the cell. A plasmid with an int sequence will integrate into a specific attachment site (att) of a host's chromosome. Thus, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes integration of such a plasmid into the DEBS genes on the chromosome of the erythromycin-producing strain by homologous recombination, to create a hybrid PKS. A preferred embodiment is when the donor PKS DNA includes a segment encoding a loading module in such a way that this loading module becomes linked to the DEBS genes on the chromosome. Such a hybrid PKS produces valuable and novel erythromycin products when cultured under suitable conditions as described by, for example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998. To illustrate, when the DEBS loading module is replaced by the avr loading module, the novel erythromycin products contain a starter unit typical of those used by the avermectin PKS.
- International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998, describes the unexpected and surprising finding that transcription of any of the hybrid erythromycin genes can be specifically and significantly increased when the hybrid genes are placed under the control of a promoter for a Type II PKS gene linked to a specific activator gene for that promoter. Such specific increases in the yield of a valuable erythromycin product are also seen for natural erythromycin PKS placed under the control of a Type II PKS promoter and activator gene.
- In one embodiment, desired genes present on an SCP2*-derived plasmid are placed under the control of the bidirectional act/promoter derived from the actinorhodin biosynthetic gene cluster of S. coelicolor. In this embodiment, the vector also contains the structural gene encoding the specific activator protein ActII-orf4. The recombinant plasmid is introduced into S. erythraea under conditions where either the introduced PKS genes, or PKS genes already present in the host strain, are expressed under the control of the actI promoter. Such strains produce the desired erythromycin product, and the activator gene requires only the presence of the specific promoter in order to enhance transcriptional efficiency from the promoter.
- The recombinant strains can produce levels of erythromycin product more than ten times those produced when the same PKS genes are under the control of the natural promoter. The specific erythromycin product is also produced precociously in growing culture, rather than only during the transition from growth to stationary phase. Thus, when the genetically engineered cell is S. erythraea, the activator and promoter are derived from the actinorhodin PKS gene cluster, and the actI/actII/-orf4-regulated ery PKS gene cluster is housed in the chromosome following the site-specific integration of a low copy-number plasmid vector, culturing of the cells under suitable conditions can produce more than ten times the amount of 14-membered macrolide product produced by a comparable strain not under such heterologous control. When in such a genetically engineered cell the PKS genes under this heterologous control are hybrid Type I PKS genes whose construction is described herein, more than ten-fold hybrid polyketide product can be obtained compared to the same hybrid Type I PKS genes not under such control. Specifically, when the hybrid Type I PKS gene cluster is DEBS in which the ery loading module has been replaced by the avr loading module, a ten-fold increase is found in the total amounts of novel 14-membered macrolides produced by the genetically engineered cells when cultured under suitable conditions as described in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998.
- Suitable and preferred means for growing the untransformed and genetically-engineered erythromycin-producing cells, and suitable and preferred means for the isolation, identification and practical utility of the novel erythromycins are described more fully in, for example, International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998.
- Untransformed or transformed organisms useful in the methods described above and capable of producing erythromycins include but are not limited to Saccharopolyspora species, Streptomyces griseoplanus, Nocardia sp., Micromonospora sp., Arthobacter sp., and S. antibioticus, but excluding S. coelicolor. Particularly suitable in this regard are untransformed and transformed strains of S. erythraea, for example NRRL 2338, 18643, 21484. Preferred transformed strains are those in which the erythromycin loading module has been replaced with the loading module from the avermectin producer, S. avermitilis, or the rapamycin producer, S. hygroscopicus.
- The preferred method for producing starting compounds for the current invention requires fermentation of the appropriate organism in the presence of the appropriate carboxylic acid of the formula R 17CO2H, wherein R17 is as defined in claim 1. The carboxylic acid is added to the fermentation either at the time of inoculation or at intervals during the fermentation. Production of polyketides that may be useful in the preparation of the compounds of this invention may be monitored by removing samples from the fermentation, extracting with an organic solvent and following the appearance of the starting compounds by chromatography, such as high-pressure liquid chromatography. Incubation is continued until the yield of the starting compound has been maximized, generally for a period of 4 to 10 days. A preferred level of each addition of the carboxylic acid or derivative thereof is between 0.05 and 4.0 g/L. The best yields of the starting compounds are generally obtained by gradually adding the acid or derivative to the fermentation, for example by daily addition over a period of several days. The medium used for the fermentation may be a conventional complex medium containing assimilable sources of carbon, nitrogen and trace elements.
- It should be understood that the methods for preparing starting materials as described in International Application WO 98/01571, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 98/01546, PUBLISHED Jan. 15, 1998; International Application WO 99/35156, PUBLISHED Jul. 15, 1999; WO 99/35157 and International Application WO 00/00500, PUBLISHED Jan. 6, 2000, are not limited to the specific detail of the examples in those applications.
- The preparation of the compounds of the present invention is illustrated in Schemes 1 to 20 below.
- Scheme 1
- Scheme 1 describes the general synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —C(═N—OR 8)— or —CH(NR8R9)—. Starting compounds of formula 2 can be prepared from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art. Treatment of compounds of formula 2 with R8O.NH2HCl in the presence of a base such as triethylamine or pyridine can afford compounds of formula 3. Reduction of compounds of formula 3, wherein R8 is H, with a reducing agent or by catalytic hydrogenation can provide amines of formula 4, which can be converted to compounds of formula 5 via reductive alkylation or direct alkylation.
- Scheme 2
- Scheme 2 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is NR 9CHR8—. Starting compounds of formula 6 can be made according to Scheme 1. Compounds of formula 6 can be converted to those of formula 8 via compounds of formula 7 by means of Beckmann rearrangement as described by Yamamoto et al. (see B. M. Trost, Comprehensive Organic Transformations, vol. 4, pp. 763-794 (hereinafter “Trost”); Yamamoto et al., J. Amer. Chem. Soc., p. 7368 (1981) (hereinafter “Yamamoto 1981”)). Compounds of formula 8 wherein R8 is hydrogen can be made by following substantially the same procedures as those of Yamamoto et al., Tetrahedron Letters, vol. 24, p. 4711 (1983) (hereinafter “Yamamoto 1983”). Compounds of formula 8 can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to afford those of formula 9.
- Scheme 3
- Scheme 3 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CHR 8NR9—. Starting compounds of formula 10 can be made according to Scheme 1 or prepared from the oxime of formula 6 via base-induced epimerization (see R. R. Wilkening et al., Bioorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., vol. 3, pp. 1287-1292 (1993) (hereinafter “Wilkening”)). Compounds of formula 10 can be converted to those of formula 12 via compounds of formula 11 by means of Beckmann rearrangement as described by Yamamoto et al. (see Trost, pp. 763-794; Yamamoto 1981, p. 7368). Compounds of formula 12 wherein R8 is hydrogen can be made by following substantially the same procedures as those of Yamamoto 1983, p. 4711. Compounds of formula 12 can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to afford compounds of formula 13.
- Scheme 4
- Scheme 4 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —NR 9CH2—. The starting compound of formula 14 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1. The transformation of the compound of formula 14 to those of formula 17 can be done by following substantially the same procedures as those described by S. Djokic et al., J. Chem. Soc., Perkin Trans. I, pp. 1881-1890 (1986), and M. Bright et al., J. Antibiotics, vol. 41, p. 1029 (1998). The compound of formula 15 can be obtained from that of formula 14 via Beckmann rearrangement. Reduction of the compound of formula 15 can provide that of formula 16, which can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to afford the compounds of formula 17. Compounds of formula 18 can be prepared from those of formula 17 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 5
- Scheme 5 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —NR 9CH2—. Starting compounds of formula 19 wherein R10 is not hydrogen can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8 as described below. The transformation of compounds of formula 19 to those of formula 22 can be achieved by following substantially the same procedures as those described by A. Dennis et al., Bioorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., pp. 2427-2432 (1998), and S. T. Waddell et al., Biorganic & Med. Chem. Lett., pp. 1321-1326 (1998). Compounds of formula 19 can undergo Beckmann rearrangement to provide those of formula 20, which can be reduced to afford the compounds of formula 21. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation can generate the compounds of formula 22. The compounds of formula 18 can be made from those of formula 22 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 6
- Scheme 6 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CH 2NR9—. The starting compound of formula 23 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1 or by base-initiated epimerization of the oxime of formula 14 (see Wilkening, pp. 1287-1292). The transformation of the compound of formula 23 to those of formula 27 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those described by Wilkening, pp. 1287-1292. Beckmann rearrangement of the compound of formula 23 can provide a mixture of the compounds of formulas 24 and 25, and both can be reduced to provide the compound of formula 26 by catalytic hydrogenation or by using a reducing agent. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of the compound of formula 26 leads to those of formula 27, which can be converted to the compounds of formula 28 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 7
- Scheme 7 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein X is —CH 2NR9—. Starting compounds of formula 29 wherein R10 is not hydrogen can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8 as described below, or by base-initiated epimerization of oximes of formula 19 wherein R10 is not hydrogen (see Wilkening, pp. 1287-1292). The transformation of compounds of formula 29 to those of formula 33 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those described by Wilkening, pp. 1287-1292. Beckmann rearrangement of compounds of formula 29 can provide a mixture of the compounds of formulas 30 and 31, and both can be reduced to provide the compounds of formula 32 by catalytic hydrogenation or by using a reducing agent. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of the compounds of formula 32 leads to those of formula 33, which can be converted to the compounds of formula 28 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 8
- Scheme 8 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1. The starting compound, the oxime of formula 14, can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 1. The transformation of the compound of formula 14 to those of formula 37 can be accomplished by following substantially the same procedures as those reported by Y. Watanabe et al., J. Antibiotics, pp. 1163-1167 (1993). The 9-oxime hydroxyl, 2′ hydroxyl and 4″ hydroxyl of the compound of formula 14 can be protected by using the methods summarized in T. W. Greene and P. G. M Wuts, Protective Groups in Organic Synthesis, 2d Ed., John Wiley & Sons, pp. 10-142 (1992) (hereinafter “Greene and Wuts”), to provide compounds of formula 34, wherein P1, P2 and P3 represent the same or different protecting groups. The preferred protecting groups are silyl ethers, such as trimethylsilyl ether, or esters, such as acetate or benzoate. Alkylation of the 6-hydroxyl of compounds of formula 34 can generate those of formula 35, which can be converted to compounds of formula 36 by means of deprotection following the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts, pp. 10-142. Deoximation of the compounds of formula 36 can provide those of formula 37. Compounds of formula 1 can be made from the compounds of formula 37 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 9
- Scheme 9 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4″-O-acylated cladinose) as shown in formula 39. Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art. The acylation of the compounds of formula 38 can be carried out to provide the compounds of formula 39 using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art. The acylation reactions may necessitate protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 10
- Scheme 10 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4″-O-acylated cladinose), as shown in formulas 41 and 42. Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art. Acylation of compounds of formula 38 can be carried out to provide the compounds of formula 40, wherein L represents a leaving group such as mesyl, tosyl or halogen, using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art. The acylation reactions may necessitate protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art. Compounds of formula 40 can undergo nucleophilic substitution to provide the compounds of formulas 41 and 42 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 11
- Scheme 11 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(O-4″-O-carbamated cladinose) as shown in formulas 44, 45 and 46. Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art. Treatment of compounds of formula 38 with carbonyidiimidazole and a base can provide compounds of formula 43. This reaction may necessitate the protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art. Compounds of formula 43 can be converted to those of formulas 44 and 45 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of compounds of formula 45 can provide those of formula 46.
- Scheme 12
- Scheme 12 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4″-substituted-3″-desmethoxy cladinose) as shown in formula 49. Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-ethyl erythromycin A by a variety of methods known to those skilled in the art. Oxidation of compounds of formula 38 using methods well known to those skilled in the art can provide compounds of formula 47 (see Yang et al., J. Org. Chem., vol. 61, pp. 5149-5152 (1996). (hereinafter “Yang”)). This oxidation reaction may necessitate the protection of other hydroxyl groups. This may be accomplished by protection as a silyl ether, an ester, a mixed carbonate or any of a variety of hydroxyl protecting groups well known to those skilled in the art. The 3″ methoxy group can be removed by following substantially the same procedures as those described by Yang, pp. 5149-5152, to provide compounds of formula 48. Compounds of formula 48 can be converted to those of formula 49, wherein R12 and R13 are as defined previously, by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 13
- Scheme 13 describes the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4″-substituted cladinose) as shown in formulas 54 and 55. Starting compounds of formula 47 are available from Scheme 12. Compounds of formula 47 can be converted to those of formula 52 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art. Epoxides of formula 50 can be formed by treating compounds of formula 47 with the sulfur ylides dimethyloxosulfonium methylide and dimethylsulfonium methylide summarized in J. March, Advanced Organic Chemistry, 4th Ed., John Wiley and Sons, pp. 974-975 (1992). Compounds of formula 51 can be converted to those of formula 53 via an epoxide-opening reaction with an azide reagent such as sodium azide. Reduction of compounds of formula 51 can provide compounds of formula 53, which can be converted to those of formulas 54 and 55 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 14
- Scheme 14 describes another synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein Y is CH(4″-substituted cladinose )as shown in formulas 57 and 58. Starting compounds of formula 50 are available from Scheme 13. Compounds of formula 50 can be converted to those of formula 56 by and epoxide-opening reaction with NH 2(CH2)nNH2, wherein n is an integer ranging from 0 to 10. Reductive alkylation or direct alkylation of compounds of formula 56 can provide those of formula 57 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art. Compounds of formula 50 can be converted to those of formula 58 via an epoxide-opening reaction with NH2(CH2)nC(O)NR8R9 by using methods well known to those skilled in the art.
- Scheme 15
- Scheme 15 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1, wherein R 1 and R2 together form a cyclic carbamate or carbazate as shown in formula 65, and the synthesis of compounds of formula 1A, wherein Rf is H or a —C(O)-imidazolyl and R3 is OR10 as shown in formulas 62 and 63, respectively. Starting compounds of formula 37 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 8. The transformation of compounds of formula 37 to those of formula 64 can be achieved by following substantially the same procedures as those described in WO 99/35157. The 2′ hydroxyl and 4″ hydroxyl of compounds of formula 37 can be protected by using the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts, pp. 10-142, to provide compounds of formula 59, wherein P1 and P2 represent the same or different protecting groups. The preferred protecting groups are silyl ethers, such as trimethylsilyl ether, or esters, such as acetate or benzoate. The 11,12-cyclic carbonation of compounds of formula 59 can be accomplished to provide compounds of formula 60 by using a variety of methods, including DBU and carbonyldiimidazole or trichloroacetyl isocyanate. Compounds of formula 60 can be converted to those of formula 61 by a variety of synthetic routes using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art. Compounds of formula 61 can undergo beta-elimination in the presence of a base such as DBU or triethylamine. Reaction of compounds of formula 62 with carbonyldiimidazole and a base such as DBU or metal hydride can provide compounds of formula 63. Compounds of formula 61 can be converted directly to compounds of formula 63 by treatment with a base and carbonyldiimidazole. Addition of compounds of formula 63 with R6B1NH2, wherein R6 and B1 are as defined previously, by following substantially the same procedures as those reported in Agouridas et al., J. Med. Chem., vol. 41, pp. 4080-4100 (1998) (hereinafter “Aqouridas”); W. W. Baker et al., J. Org. Chem., pp. 2340-2345 (1988); or G. Griesgraber et al., J. Antibiotics, vol. 49, pp. 465-77 (1996), can afford compounds of formula 64. The protecting group of the 2′ hydroxyl of compounds of formula 64 can be removed by using conventional methods known to those skilled in the art. Further conventional chemical manipulation of the 2′ hydroxyl of compounds of formula 64 can furnish compounds of formula 65.
- Scheme 16
- Scheme 16 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formula 66. Starting compounds of formula 63 are available from Scheme 15. Reaction of compounds of formula 63 with NH2C(D)(E)C(F)(G)NH2, wherein D, E, F and G are as defined previously, followed by deprotection of P1 at 2′ and subsequent conventional chemical manipulation of the 2′ hydroxyl can provide compounds of formula 66.
- Scheme 17
- Scheme 17 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formula 72. Starting compounds of formula 67 can be prepared according to Scheme 15. Oximation of compounds of formula 68 can be carried out by using conventional methods well known to those skilled in the art. The conversion of compounds of formula 68 wherein R8 is hydrogen to those of formula 69 can be achieved by using a reducing agent such as TiCl3, followed by NaBH3CN or by catalytic hydrogenation. Reaction of compounds of formula 69 with C(D)(E)(O), wherein D and E are as defined previously, in the presence of a acid such as formic acid or acetic acid can generate compounds of formula 70, which can undergo reductive alkylation or direct alkylation to provide compounds of formula 71. Treatment of compounds of formula 71 with a base followed by a halogenating agent or an appropriate electrophile using the procedures described in WO 99/21865, published May 6, 1999, can generate compounds of formula 72. Examples of suitable bases include sodium hydride, potassium hydride, DBU, lithium or sodium or potassium diisopropylamide, or potassium or sodium hydroxide. Examples of a suitable halogenating agent include 1-(chloromethyl)4-floro-1,4-diazonibicyclo(2.2.2)octane bis(tetrafluoroborate) and (ArSO2)2N-halogen, wherein Ar is a C6-C10 aryl.
- Scheme 18
- Scheme 18 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together with X form two additional rings as shown in formulas 75, 77 and 78. Starting compounds of formula 73 can be prepared according to Scheme 17. Treatment of compounds of formula 73 with tosyl chloride or mesyl chloride and a base such as triethylamine, pyridine or DBU can provide compounds of formula 74. Treatment of compounds of formula 74 with a base followed by a halogenating agent or an appropriate electrophile can generate compounds of formula 75. Examples of suitable bases include sodium hydride, potassium hydride, DBU, lithium or sodium or potassium diisopropylamide, or potassium or sodium hydroxide. Examples of a suitable halogenating agent include 1-(chloromethyl)4-fluoro-1,4-diazonibicyclo(2.2.2)octane bis(tetrafluoroborate) and (ArSO2)2N-halogen, wherein Ar is a C6-C10 aryl. Reaction of compounds of formula 73 with C(D)(E)(O), wherein D and E are as defined previously, in the presence of an acid such formic acid or acetic acid can provide compounds of formula 76. Compounds of formula 76 can be converted to those of formula 77 in a fashion similar to the conversion of compounds of formula 74 to those of formula 75. Reduction of compounds of formula 77 to those of formula 78 can be carried out by using a reducing agent, for example, triphenylphosphine, or by catalytic hydrogenation by following substantially the same procedures as those described in WO 99/21865.
- Scheme 19
- Scheme 19 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 1 and R2 together form a cyclic urea as shown in formula 86. Starting compounds of formula 60 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A according to Scheme 15. The cladinose moiety of compounds of formula 60 can be removed to provide compounds of formula 79 by treatment with an acid such as hydrochloric acid or sulfuric acid. Oxidation of compounds of formula 79 can be accomplished to provide compounds of formula 80 by using a variety of conventional methods well known to those skilled in the art, such as the modified Pfitzner-Moffat procedure as described in Agouridas, pp. 4080-4100. Reaction of compounds of formula 80 with a base such as triethylamine or DBU can promote beta-elimination to generate the alcohols of formula 81. Compounds of formula 81 can be converted to those of formula 82 by treatment with carbonyidiimidazole and a base such as triethylamine or DBU. Compounds of formula 80 can be converted directly to those of formula 82 by reacting the compounds of formula 80 with carbonyldiimidazole and a base, such as DBU and triethylamine. The acetal opening reaction can be carried out to provide the azides of formula 83 by treating compounds of formula 82 with an azide reagent, such as TMS-N3, in the presence of a Lewis acid, such as Me3Al or Me2AlCl. The conversion of compounds of formula 83 to those of formula 84 can be achieved by reduction with a reducing agent such as triphenylphosphine or by catalytic hydrogenation. Reaction of compounds of formula 84 with a base, such as metal hydride or DBU, and carbonyldiimidazole followed by R6B1NH2, wherein R6 and B1 are as defined previously, can afford the 11,12-cyclic ureas of formula 85. The 2′ protecting group can be removed by using the methods summarized in Greene and Wuts, pp. 10-142. Subsequent conventional chemical manipulation of the 2′ hydroxyl group can provide compounds of formula 86.
- Scheme 20
- Scheme 20 outlines the synthesis of compounds of formula 1 wherein R 3 and Y together form a cyclic ketal as shown in formula 88. Starting compounds of formula 38 can be made from 13-methyl erythromycin A by using methods well known to those skilled in the art. The cladinose moiety of compounds of formula 38 can be removed to provide compounds of formula 87 by treatment with an acid, such hydrochloric acid or sulfuric acid. The ketals of formula 88 can be formed from the compounds of formula 87 by reaction with R14 R15C(O), wherein R14 and R15 are as defined previously, in the presence of an acid. The preferred acid is p-toluenesulfonic acid.
- The compounds of the present invention may have asymmetric carbon atoms. Such diastereomeric mixtures can be separated into their individual diastereomers on the basis of their physical chemical differences by methods known to those skilled in the art, for example, by chromatography or fractional crystallization. Enantiomers can be separated by converting the enantiomeric mixtures into a diastereomeric mixture by reaction with an appropriate optically active compound (e.g., alcohol), separating the diastereomers and converting (e.g., hydrolyzing) the individual diastereomers to the corresponding pure enantiomers. All such isomers, including the enantiomer mixtures, the diastereomer mixtures, the pure diastereomers and the pure enantiomers, are considered to be part of the invention.
- The compounds of formulas 1 and 1A that are basic in nature are capable of forming a wide variety of salts with various inorganic and organic acids. Although such salts must be pharmaceutically acceptable for administration to animals (including mammals, fish and birds), it is often desirable in practice to initially isolate a compound of formula 1 or 1A from the reaction mixture as a pharmaceutically unacceptable salt, to then simply convert the latter back to the free base compound by treatment with an alkaline reagent, and to subsequently convert the latter free base to a pharmaceutically acceptable acid addition salt. The acid addition salts of the base compounds of this invention are readily prepared by treating the base compound with a substantially equivalent amount of the chosen mineral or organic acid in an aqueous solvent medium or in a suitable organic solvent, such as methanol or ethanol. Upon careful evaporation of the solvent, the desired solid salt is readily obtained. The desired acid salt can also be precipitated from a solution of the free base in an organic solvent by adding to the solution an appropriate mineral or organic acid.
- Those compounds of formulas 1 and 1A that are acidic in nature are capable of forming base salts with various pharmacologically acceptable cations. Examples of such salts include the alkali metal or alkaline earth metal salts and, particularly, the sodium and potassium salts. These salts may be prepared by conventional techniques. The chemical bases that are used as reagents to prepare the pharmaceutically acceptable base salts of this invention are those that form non-toxic base salts with the acidic compounds of formulas 1 and 1A. Such non-toxic base salts include those derived from such pharmacologically acceptable cations as sodium, potassium, calcium and magnesium, etc. These salts can be prepared by treating the corresponding acidic compounds with an aqueous solution containing the desired pharmacologically acceptable cations and then evaporating the resulting solution to dryness, preferably under reduced pressure. Alternatively, they may also be prepared by mixing lower alkanolic solutions of the acidic compounds and the desired alkali metal alkoxide together and then evaporating the resulting solution to dryness in the same manner as before. In either case, stoichiometric quantities of reagents are preferably employed in order to ensure completeness of the reaction and maximum yields of the desired final product.
- The compounds of formulas 1 and 1A and their pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates (hereinafter referred to collectively as “the active compounds of this invention”) may be administered alone or in combination with pharmaceutically acceptable carriers, in either single or multiple doses. A pharmaceutically acceptable carrier will generally be selected with regard to the intended route of administration and standard pharmaceutical practice.
- Pharmaceutical compositions of this invention comprise any of the compounds of the present invention, and pharmaceutically acceptable salts, prodrugs and solvates thereof, together with any pharmaceutically acceptable carrier. Suitable pharmaceutical carriers include, but are not limited to, inert solid diluents or fillers, sterile aqueous solutions and various organic solvents. Examples of suitable pharmaceutically acceptable carriers include ion exchangers, alumina, aluminum stearate, lecithin, self-emulsifying drug delivery systems (SEDDS), surfactants used in pharmaceutical dosage forms such as Tweens or other similar polymeric delivery matrices, serum proteins, such as human serum albumin, polyethylene glycol polymers such as PEG-400, buffer substances such as phosphates, glycine, sorbic acid, potassium sorbate, partial glyceride mixtures of saturated vegetable fatty acids, water, salts or electrolytes, such as protamine sulfate, disodium hydrogen phosphate, potassium hydrogen phosphate, sodium chloride, zinc salts, colloidal silica, magnesium trisilicate, polyvinyl pyrrolidone, cellulose-based substances, sodium carboxymethylcellulose, polyacrylates, waxes, polyethylene-polyoxypropylene-block polymers and wool fat.
- The pharmaceutical compositions formed using the active compounds of this invention may be administered orally, parenterally, by inhalation spray, topically, rectally, nasally, buccally, vaginally or via an implanted reservoir. The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may contain any conventional non-toxic pharmaceutically acceptable carriers. In some cases, the pH of the formulation may be adjusted with pharmaceutically acceptable acids, bases or buffers to enhance the stability of the formulated compound or its delivery form. The term “parenteral” as used herein includes subcutaneous, intracutaneous, intravenous, intramuscular, intra-articular, intraperitoneal, intrasynovial, intrasternal, intrathecal, intralesional and intracranial injection or infusion techniques.
- For parenteral administration, the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may be in the form of solutions containing sesame or peanut oil, aqueous propylene glycol or sterile aqueous solution. Aqueous solutions should be suitably buffered if necessary and the liquid diluent first rendered isotonic with sufficient saline or glucose. These particular aqueous solutions are especially suitable for intravenous, intramuscular, subcutaneous and intraperitoneal administration. The sterile aqueous media employed are all readily available by standard techniques known to those skilled in the art.
- The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may be in the form of a sterile injectable preparation, for example, as a sterile injectable aqueous or oleaginous suspension. This suspension may be formulated according to techniques known in the art using suitable dispersing or wetting agents (such as, for example, Tween 80) and suspending agents. The sterile injectable preparation may also be a sterile injectable solution or suspension in a non-toxic parenterally-acceptable diluent or solvent, for example, as a solution in 1,3-butanediol. Among the acceptable vehicles and solvents that may be employed are mannitol, water, Ringer's solution and isotonic sodium chloride solution. In addition, sterile, fixed oils are conventionally employed as a solvent or suspending medium. For this purpose, any bland fixed oil may be employed, including synthetic mono- or diglycerides. Fatty acids, such as oleic acid and its glyceride derivatives are useful in the preparation of injectables, as are natural pharmaceutically-acceptable oils, such as olive oil or castor oil, especially in their polyoxyethylated versions. These oil solutions or suspensions may also contain a long-chain alcohol diluent or dispersant such as carboxymethyl cellulose or similar dispersing agents that are commonly used in the formulation of pharmaceutically acceptable dosage forms such as emulsions and/or suspensions. Other commonly used surfactants such as Tweens and Spans and/or other similar emulsifying agents or bioavailability enhancers that are commonly used in the manufacture of pharmaceutically acceptable solid, liquid or other dosage forms may also be used for the purposes of formulation.
- The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may be orally administered in any orally acceptable dosage form including, but not limited to, hard or soft gelatin capsules, tablets, powders, lozenges, emulsions and aqueous suspensions, dispersions and solutions. In the case of tablets for oral use, carriers that are commonly used include lactose and corn starch. Various excipients such as sodium citrate, calcium carbonate and calcium phosphate may be employed along with disintegrants such as starch, methylcellulose, alginic acid and certain complex silicates, together with binding agents such as polyvinylpyrrolidone, sucrose, gelatin and acacia. Lubricating agents, such as magnesium stearate, sodium lauryl sulfate and talc, are also typically added. Solid compositions of a similar type may also be employed as fillers for oral administration in the form of soft and hard filled gelatin capsules. Preferred diluents for oral administration in a capsule form include lactose or milk sugar and high molecular weight polyethylene glycols. When aqueous suspensions and/or emulsions are administered orally, the active ingredient is combined with emulsifying and/or suspending agents and/or diluents such as water, ethanol, propylene glycol, glycerin and combinations thereof. If desired, certain sweetening and/or flavoring and/or coloring agents may be added.
- The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may also be administered in the form of suppositories for rectal administration. These compositions can be prepared by mixing a compound of this invention with a suitable non-irritating excipient that is solid at room temperature but liquid at the rectal temperature. The excipient will therefore melt in the rectum to release the active components. Such materials include, but are not limited to, cocoa butter, beeswax and polyethylene glycols.
- Topical administration of the pharmaceutical compositions of this invention is especially useful when the desired treatment involves areas or organs readily accessible by topical application. For application topically to the skin, the pharmaceutical composition should be formulated with a suitable ointment containing the active components suspended or dissolved in a carrier. Carriers for topical administration of the compounds of this invention include, but are not limited to, mineral oil, liquid petroleum, white petroleum, propylene glycol, polyoxyethylene polyoxypropylene compound, emulsifying wax and water. Alternatively, the pharmaceutical composition can be formulated with a suitable lotion or cream containing the active compound suspended or dissolved in a carrier. Suitable carriers include, but are not limited to, mineral oil, sorbitan monostearate, polysorbate 60, cetyl esters wax, cetearyl alcohol, 2-octyldodecanol, benzyl alcohol and water. The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may also be topically applied to the lower intestinal tract by rectal suppository formulation or in a suitable enema formulation. Topically transdermal patches are also included in this invention.
- The pharmaceutical compositions of this invention may be administered by nasal aerosol or inhalation. Such compositions are prepared according to techniques well known in the art of pharmaceutical formulation and may be prepared as solutions in saline, employing benzyl alcohol or other suitable preservatives, absorption promoters to enhance bioavailability, fluorocarbons, and/or other solubilizing or dispersing agents known in the art.
- To implement the methods of this invention, an effective dose of an active compound of this invention is administered to a susceptible or infected animal (including mammals, fish and birds) by parenteral, oral, nasal, buccal, vaginal or rectal routes, or locally as a topical application to the skin and/or mucous membranes. The route of administration will depend on the mammal, fish or bird that is being treated.
- The daily dose will usually range from about 0.25 to about 150 mg/kg body weight of the patient to be treated, preferably from about 0.25 to about 25 mg/kg. Typically, the compounds and compositions of this invention will be administered from about ______ to about ______ times per day or, alternatively, as a continuous infusion. Such administration can be used as a chronic or acute therapy. The amount of active ingredient that may be combined with the carrier materials to produce a single dosage form will vary depending upon the host treated and the particular mode of administration.
- As the skilled artisan will appreciate, lower or higher doses than those recited above may be required. Specific dosage and treatment regimens for any particular patient will depend upon a variety of factors, including the severity of the disease, the activity of the specific compound employed, the age, body weight, general health status, sex and diet of the patient, the time of administration, the rate of excretion of the drug, whether a drug combination is employed, the severity and course of the disorder, the patient's disposition to the disorder and the judgment of the treating physician.
- The compounds of this invention may be administered to a patient either as a single agent or in combination with other agents. The compounds of this invention may be co-administered with other compounds of this invention or with other antibacterial or antiprotozoal agents to increase the effect of therapy. Combination therapies according to this invention may exert an additive or synergistic antibacterial or antiprotozoal effect, e.g., because each component agent of the combination may act on a different site or through a different mechanism. The use of such combination therapies may also advantageously reduce the dosage of a given conventional antibiotic agent that would be required for a desired therapeutic effect, as compared to when that agent is administered as a monotherapy. Such combinations may reduce or eliminate the side effects of conventional antibiotic therapies, while not interfering with the antibiotic activity of those agents. These combinations reduce the potential of resistance to single agent therapies, while minimizing any associated toxicity. Alternatively, pharmaceutical compositions according to this invention may be comprised of a combination of a compound of this invention and another agent having a different therapeutic or prophylactic effect.
- When the compounds of this invention are administered in combination therapies with other agents, they may be administered sequentially or concurrently to the patient. The additional agents may be administered separately, as part of a multiple dose regimen, from the compounds of this invention. Alternatively, those agents may be part of a single dosage form, mixed together with the compounds of this invention in a single composition. The pharmaceutical compositions according to this invention may comprise a combination of an antibacterial or antiprotozoal agent according to this invention and one or more therapeutic agents.
- The activity of each of the compounds of the present invention may be tested in various ways. For example, the activity of each of the compounds of the present invention against bacterial and protozoal pathogens is demonstrated by each compound's ability to inhibit the growth of defined strains of human (Assay I) or animal (Assays II and III) pathogens.
- Assay I
- Assay I, described below, employs conventional methodology and interpretation criteria. This assay is designed to identify chemical modifications that may lead to compounds that circumvent defined macrolide resistance mechanisms. Assay I employs a panel of bacterial strains that includes a variety of target pathogenic species, including representatives of previously characterized macrolide resistance mechanisms. Use of this panel demonstrates the relationship between the chemical structure of a compound and its activity with respect to potency, spectrum of activity, and structural elements or modifications that may be necessary to obviate resistance mechanisms. The bacterial pathogens that are included in the screening panel are shown in the table below. In many cases, both the macrolide-susceptible parent strain and the macrolide-resistant strain derived from it are available to provide a more accurate assessment of the compound's ability to circumvent the resistance mechanism.
- Strains that contain the gene with the designation of ermA/ermB/ermC are resistant to macrolides, lincosamides and streptogramin B antibiotics. This resistance is due to modification (methylation) of 23S rRNA molecules by an Erm methylase, which generally prevents the binding of all three structural classes. Two types of macrolide efflux have been described; msrA encodes a component of an efflux system in staphylococci that prevents the entry of macrolides and streptogramins, while mefA/E encodes a transmembrane protein that appears to efflux only macrolides. Inactivation of macrolide antibiotics can occur and can be mediated either by a phosphorylation of the 2′-hydroxyl (mph) or by cleavage of the macrocyclic lactone (esterase). The strains may be characterized using conventional polymerase chain reaction (PCR) technology and/or by sequencing the resistance determinant. The use of PCR technology in this application is described in J. Sutcliffe et al., “Detection of Erythromycin-Resistant Determinants by PCR”, Antimicrobial Agents and Chemotherapy, vol. 40, no. 11, pp. 2562-2566 (1996).
- The test compounds are initially dissolved in dimethylsulfoxide (DMSO) as 40 mg/ml stock solutions. The antibacterial assay is performed in microtiter trays and interpreted according to Performance Standards for Antimicrobial Disk Susceptibility Tests—Sixth Edition: Approved Standard, published by The National Committee for Clinical Laboratory Standards (NCCLS) guidelines; the minimum inhibitory concentration (MIC) is used to compare the strains. The terms “acr AB” and “acr AB-like” indicate that an intrinsia multidrug efflux pump exists in the strain.
Strain Designation Macrolide Resistance Mechanism(s) Staphylococcus aureus 1116 susceptible parent Staphylococcus aureus 1117 ErmB Staphylococcus aureus 0052 susceptible parent Staphylococcus aureus 1120 ErmC Staphylococcus aureus 1032 msrA, mph, esterase Staphylococcus hemolyticus 1006 msrA, mph Streptococcus pyogenes 0203 susceptible parent Streptococcus pyogenes 1079 ErmB Streptococcus pyogenes 1062 susceptible parent Streptococcus pyogenes 1061 ErmB Streptococcus pyogenes 1064 MefA Streptococcus agalactiae 1024 susceptible parent Streptococcus agalactiae 1023 ErmB Streptococcus pneumoniae 1016 susceptible Streptococcus pneumoniae 1046 ErmB Streptococcus pneumoniae 1095 ErmB Streptococcus pneumoniae 1175 MefE Haemophilus influenzae 0085 susceptible; acr AB-like Haemophilus influenzae 0131 susceptible; acr AB-like Moraxella catarrhalis 0040 susceptible Moraxella catarrhalis 1055 erythromycin intermediate resistance Escherichia coli 0266 susceptible; acr AB Haemophilus influenzae 1100 susceptible; acr AB-like - Assay II
- This assay is based on the liquid dilution method in microliter format. A single colony of P. multocida (strain 59A067) is inoculated into 5 ml of brain heart infusion (BHI) broth. The test compounds are prepared by solubilizing 1 mg of the compound in 125 μl of dimethylsulfoxide (DMSO). Dilutions of the test compound are prepared using uninoculated BHI broth. The concentrations of the test compound used range from 200 μg/ml to 0.098 μg/ml by two-fold serial dilutions. The P. multocida-inoculated BHI is diluted with uninoculated BHI broth to make a 104 cell suspension per 200 μl. The BHI cell suspensions are mixed with respective serial dilutions of the test compound and incubated at 37° C. for 18 hours.
- The minimum inhibitory concentration (MIC) is equal to the concentration of the compound exhibiting 100% inhibition of growth of P. multocida as determined by comparison with an uninoculated control.
- Assay III is used to test for activity against Pasteurella haemolytica.
- Assay III
- This assay is based on the agar dilution method using a Steers Replicator. Two to five colonies isolated from an agar plate are inoculated into BHI broth and incubated overnight at 37° C. with shaking (200 rpm). The next morning, 300 μl of the fully grown P. haemolytica preculture is inoculated into 3 ml of fresh BHI broth and is incubated at 37° C. with shaking (200 rpm). The appropriate amounts of the test compounds are dissolved in ethanol and a series of two-fold serial dilutions are prepared. Two ml of the respective serial dilution is mixed with 18 ml of molten BHI agar and solidified. When the inoculated P. haemolytica culture reaches 0.5 McFarland standard density, about 5 μl of the P. haemolytica culture is inoculated onto BHI agar plates containing the various concentrations of the test compound using a Steers Replicator and incubated for 18 hours at 37° C. Initial concentrations of the test compound range from 100-200 μg/ml.
- The MIC is equal to the concentration of the test compound exhibiting 100% inhibition of growth of P. haemolytica as determined by comparison with an uninoculated control.
- The in vivo activity of the compounds of the present invention can be determined by conventional animal protection studies well known to those skilled in the art, usually carried out in mice. Assay IV is an example of an animal protection study performed in mice and used to test for activity against P. multocida.
- Assay IV
- Mice are allotted to cages (10 per cage) upon their arrival, and allowed to acclimate for a minimum of 48 hours before being used. Animals are inoculated with 0.5 ml of a 3×10 3 CFU/ml bacterial suspension (P. multocida strain 59A006) intraperitoneally. Each experiment has at least 3 non-medicated control groups, including one infected with a 0.1×challenge dose and two infected with a 1×challenge dose; a 10×challenge data group may also be used. Generally, all mice in a given study can be challenged within 30-90 minutes, especially if a repeating syringe (such as a Cornwall® syringe) is used to administer the challenge. Thirty minutes after challenging has begun, the first compound treatment is given. It may be necessary for a second person to begin compound dosing if all of the animals have not been challenged at the end of 30 minutes. The routes of administration are subcutaneous or oral. Subcutaneous doses are administered into the loose skin in the back of the neck, whereas oral doses are given by means of a feeding needle. In both cases, a volume of 0.2 ml is used per mouse.
- The test compounds are administered 30 minutes, 4 hours and 24 hours after challenge. A control compound of known efficacy administered by the same route is included in each test. The animals are observed daily, and the number of survivors in each group is recorded. The P. multocida model monitoring continues for 96 hours (four days) post challenge.
- The PD 50 is a calculated dose at which the test compound protects 50% of a group of mice from mortality due to a bacterial infection that would be lethal in the absence of drug treatment.
- 200 mg of 13-methyl erythromycin A is dissolved in 10 mL of anhydrous pyridine. Hydroxylamine hydrochloride (0.145 g, 7.5 equiv.) is added, and the solution is heated to 60° C. and stirred for 24 hours. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 25 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The pH is adjusted to 10 using 1N NaOH, extracted with 3×25 mL methylene chloride, and dried over Na 2SO4. Filtration and concentration of filtrate yields a light yellow solid product. The product (0.195 g) is purified by HPLC to yield the title compound as a white solid (0.085 g).
- MS: m/z 735 (M+H).
- 70 mg of the compound of formula 14, obtained from Example 1, is dissolved in 1.5 mL of acetone. An aqueous solution of Na 2HCO3 (1.0 g in 10.0 mL water) is added (0.33 mL) and the resulting mixture is cooled to 0° C. A solution of para-toluenesulfonyl chloride (0.380 g) in acetone (1.0 mL), cooled to 0° C., is added (0.1 mL) and the mixture stirred overnight. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 30 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The pH is adjusted to 10 using 1N NaOH, extracted with 3×20 mL methylene chloride, and dried over Na2SO4. Filtration and concentration of filtrate yields the title compound as a solid (0.062 g).
- MS: m/z 717 (M+H).
- 60 mg of the compound of formula 15, obtained from Example 2, is dissolved in 0.50 mL tetrahydrofuran and 2.5 mL ethylene glycol and then cooled to 0-5° C. NaBH 4 (0.047 g) is added and the reaction stirred for 10 hours at 0-5° C. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 20 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The aqueous is re-extracted with 1×10 mL methylene chloride. The organic layers are combined and dried over Na2SO4. Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid (0.037 g).
- MS: m/z 721 (M+H).
Compound 16 Carbon # 13C-ppm 1H-ppm 1 178.13 — 2 45.24 2.72 3 78.06 4.31 4 43.18 2.06 5 83.33 3.70 6 74.42 — 7 43.15 1.78 1.44 8 30.52 1.82 9 57.93 3.10 1.97 10 57.17 2.71 11 72.68 3.74 12 74.33 — 13 73.52 4.87 14 13.58 1.28(3) 15 14.24 1.21(3) 16 9.69 1.10(3) 17 28.04 1.34(3) 18 22.52 1.00(3) 19 14.78 1.22(3) 20 16.36 1.14(3) 1′ 103.28 4.48 2′ 71.28 3.26 3′ 66.28 2.49 4′ 29.14 1.71 1.27 5′ 69.19 3.56 6′ 21.83 1.27(3) 7′ 40.80 2.33(3) 8′ 40.80 2.33(3) 1″ 95.16 5.14 2″ 35.21 2.42 1.63 3″ 73.46 — 4″ 78.58 3.08 5″ 65.95 4.12 6″ 18.60 1.36(3) 7″ 49.90 3.39(3) 8″ 22.07 1.29(3) - The compound of formula 17, obtained from Example 3, is dissolved in chloroform. 37% formaldehyde (3.0 equiv.) and formic acid (3.0 equiv.) are added and the solution stirred at 45-50° C. for 12-24 hours. The reaction mixture is concentrated under vacuum. The residue is then dissolved in 1-2 mL of methylene chloride. 2-5 mL of a saturated NaHCO 3 aqueous solution is then added. The layers are separated and the aqueous re-extracted with an equal volume of methylene chloride. The organics are combined and dried over Na2SO4. Filtration, concentration and isolation yield the title compound as a solid.
- The compound of formula 14, obtained from Example 4, is dissolved in ethanol. Lithium hydroxide monohydrate (2 equivalents) is added and the reaction mixture stirred overnight at room temperature. The reaction is concentrated under vacuum and partitioned between brine and ethyl acetate. The pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 9-10. The reaction mixture is extracted with ethyl acetate and dried over Na 2SO4. A 4:1 ratio of Z:E isomers is produced. The crude product is purified by either silica chromatography or crystallization from nitromethane to give the title compound.
- The compound of formula 23, obtained from Example 5, is dissolved in acetone. A 0.1 M aqueous solution of NaHCO 3 (2 equiv.) is added, and the resulting mixture is cooled to 0-5° C. A 0.1 M solution of para-toluenesulfonyl chloride in acetone is added and the mixture stirred overnight. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 25 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 9-10 using 1N NaOH. The reaction mixture is extracted with 3×20 mL methylene chloride and dried over Na2SO4. Filtration and concentration of filtrate yields the title compound as a solid product.
- Method A: The compound of formula 24, obtained from Example 6, is dissolved in glacial acetic acid. Platinum oxide catalyst (50 mole %) is added, and the reaction is flushed with nitrogen, placed under 50 psi hydrogen and shaken at room temperature for 24 hours. Additional platinum oxide catalyst (50 mole %) is added, and the reaction is flushed with nitrogen, placed under 50 psi hydrogen and shaken at room temperature for an additional 24-48 hours. The reaction is worked up by filtration through Celite™. A volume of 25 mL of water is added, and the pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 9-10 using 1N NaOH. The reaction mixture is extracted with 3×25 mL methylene chloride and dried over Na 2SO4. Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid product.
- Method B: The compound of formula 24 is dissolved in 0.5 mL MeOH and cooled to 0-5° C. NaBH 4 (10 equiv.) is added, and the reaction is stirred for 4 hours at 0-5° C., warmed to room temperature and stirred overnight. The reaction is worked up by decanting into 10 mL of a 1:1 mixture of methylene chloride and water. The pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 8-9 using 1N NaOH, extracted with 3×5 mL methylene chloride and dried over Na2SO4. Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid product.
- The compound of formula 26, obtained from Example 7, is dissolved in chloroform. 37% formaldehyde (1.0 equiv.) and formic acid (1.0 equiv.) is added and the solution stirred at 45-50° C. for 48-72 hours. The reaction mixture is then decanted into a 1:1 mixture of chloroform and water. The pH of the reaction mixture is adjusted to 9-10 using 1N NaOH, and the reaction mixture is extracted with chloroform and dried over Na 2SO4. Filtration and concentration yields the title compound as a solid product.
- While we have described a number of embodiments of this invention, it is apparent that our basic constructions may be altered to provide other embodiments that utilize the products and processes of this invention. Therefore, it will be appreciated that the scope of this invention is to be defined by the appended claims, rather than by the specific embodiments that have been presented by way of example.
Claims (20)
Priority Applications (2)
| Application Number | Priority Date | Filing Date | Title |
|---|---|---|---|
| US09/577,901 US20030100518A1 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2000-05-24 | 13-Methyl erythromycin derivatives |
| US10/441,347 US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2003-05-19 | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
Applications Claiming Priority (2)
| Application Number | Priority Date | Filing Date | Title |
|---|---|---|---|
| US13546899P | 1999-05-24 | 1999-05-24 | |
| US09/577,901 US20030100518A1 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2000-05-24 | 13-Methyl erythromycin derivatives |
Related Child Applications (1)
| Application Number | Title | Priority Date | Filing Date |
|---|---|---|---|
| US10/441,347 Continuation US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2003-05-19 | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
Publications (1)
| Publication Number | Publication Date |
|---|---|
| US20030100518A1 true US20030100518A1 (en) | 2003-05-29 |
Family
ID=22468240
Family Applications (2)
| Application Number | Title | Priority Date | Filing Date |
|---|---|---|---|
| US09/577,901 Abandoned US20030100518A1 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2000-05-24 | 13-Methyl erythromycin derivatives |
| US10/441,347 Expired - Fee Related US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2003-05-19 | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
Family Applications After (1)
| Application Number | Title | Priority Date | Filing Date |
|---|---|---|---|
| US10/441,347 Expired - Fee Related US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2003-05-19 | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
Country Status (32)
| Country | Link |
|---|---|
| US (2) | US20030100518A1 (en) |
| EP (1) | EP1180110A1 (en) |
| JP (1) | JP2003500414A (en) |
| KR (1) | KR20020016799A (en) |
| CN (1) | CN1351608A (en) |
| AP (1) | AP2001002302A0 (en) |
| AR (1) | AR020032A1 (en) |
| AU (1) | AU3832100A (en) |
| BG (1) | BG106127A (en) |
| BR (1) | BR0010938A (en) |
| CA (1) | CA2373117C (en) |
| CZ (1) | CZ20013733A3 (en) |
| DZ (1) | DZ3045A1 (en) |
| EA (1) | EA200100983A1 (en) |
| EE (1) | EE200100613A (en) |
| HK (1) | HK1045523A1 (en) |
| HR (1) | HRP20010866A2 (en) |
| HU (1) | HUP0201516A3 (en) |
| IL (1) | IL145739A0 (en) |
| IS (1) | IS6128A (en) |
| MA (1) | MA26740A1 (en) |
| NO (1) | NO20015172L (en) |
| OA (1) | OA11945A (en) |
| PA (1) | PA8495101A1 (en) |
| PE (1) | PE20010171A1 (en) |
| PL (1) | PL352720A1 (en) |
| SK (1) | SK15162001A3 (en) |
| TN (1) | TNSN00108A1 (en) |
| TR (1) | TR200103395T2 (en) |
| UY (1) | UY26161A1 (en) |
| WO (1) | WO2000071557A1 (en) |
| ZA (1) | ZA200109595B (en) |
Cited By (6)
| Publication number | Priority date | Publication date | Assignee | Title |
|---|---|---|---|---|
| US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2004-08-17 | Pfizer, Inc. | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
| US6825171B2 (en) | 1998-01-02 | 2004-11-30 | Pfizer, Inc. | Erythromycin derivatives |
| US6833444B2 (en) | 1999-01-27 | 2004-12-21 | Pfizer, Inc. | Ketolide antibiotics |
| US6835716B2 (en) | 1998-11-03 | 2004-12-28 | Pfizer, Inc. | Macrolide antibiotics |
| US7015203B2 (en) | 1998-01-02 | 2006-03-21 | Pfizer Inc. | Macrolides |
| US20060135447A1 (en) * | 2004-12-21 | 2006-06-22 | Chupak Louis S | Macrolides |
Families Citing this family (21)
| Publication number | Priority date | Publication date | Assignee | Title |
|---|---|---|---|---|
| US6939861B2 (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2005-09-06 | Kosan Biosciences, Inc. | Amido macrolides |
| US6514944B2 (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2003-02-04 | Kosan Biosciences, Inc. | Macrolide antiinfective agents |
| MXPA01010521A (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2003-08-19 | Johnson & Johnson | Ketolide antibacterials. |
| US6451768B1 (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2002-09-17 | Kosan Biosciences, Inc. | Macrolide antiinfective agents |
| US6590083B1 (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2003-07-08 | Ortho-Mcneil Pharmaceutical, Inc. | Ketolide antibacterials |
| KR100710605B1 (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2007-04-24 | 코산 바이오사이언시즈, 인코포레이티드 | Macrolide Anti-Infectives |
| PT1167376E (en) | 2000-06-30 | 2004-09-30 | Pfizer Prod Inc | MACROLIDOS ANTIBIOTICS |
| GB0127349D0 (en) | 2001-11-14 | 2002-01-02 | Glaxo Group Ltd | Macrolides |
| RU2004117082A (en) | 2001-12-05 | 2005-04-10 | Орто-Макнейл Фармасьютикал, Инк. (Us) | KETOLIDE 6-0-ACYL DERIVATIVES OF ERYTHROMYCIN AS ANTIBACTERIAL MEANS |
| WO2003090761A1 (en) * | 2002-04-25 | 2003-11-06 | Abbott Laboratories | 9-oxime macrolide antibacterials |
| JP2005528409A (en) * | 2002-04-25 | 2005-09-22 | アボット・ラボラトリーズ | Oxolide antibacterial agent |
| GB0225384D0 (en) | 2002-10-31 | 2002-12-11 | Glaxo Group Ltd | Novel compounds |
| US7414030B2 (en) * | 2004-01-07 | 2008-08-19 | Enanta Pharmaceuticals, Inc. | 6-11 Bicyclic erythromycin derivatives |
| WO2007144876A1 (en) | 2006-06-12 | 2007-12-21 | Ramot At Tel-Aviv University Ltd. | Methods for treating cancer |
| CN101175322B (en) * | 2007-11-16 | 2010-12-15 | 华为技术有限公司 | Subdistrict selection method |
| KR101043637B1 (en) * | 2009-07-13 | 2011-06-24 | 태석정공 주식회사 | Combined Structure of Camera Module of Portable Dual Monitor |
| AR085286A1 (en) | 2011-02-21 | 2013-09-18 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co Ltd | MACROLIDO DERIVATIVE REPLACED IN POSITION C-4 |
| JP2016503051A (en) | 2012-12-24 | 2016-02-01 | ラモット・アット・テル−アヴィヴ・ユニヴァーシティ・リミテッド | Agent for treating hereditary disease caused by nonsense mutation, and method for identifying the same |
| CA2908575C (en) | 2013-04-04 | 2021-11-16 | President And Fellows Of Harvard College | Macrolides and methods of their preparation and use |
| CA2963815A1 (en) | 2014-10-08 | 2016-04-14 | President And Fellows Of Harvard College | 14-membered ketolides and methods of their preparation and use |
| JP2018509452A (en) | 2015-03-25 | 2018-04-05 | プレジデント アンド フェローズ オブ ハーバード カレッジ | Macrolides with modified desosamine sugars and uses thereof |
Family Cites Families (102)
| Publication number | Priority date | Publication date | Assignee | Title |
|---|---|---|---|---|
| US13665A (en) * | 1855-10-09 | Daguerreotype-plate holder | ||
| US100518A (en) * | 1870-03-08 | Roland s | ||
| US13662A (en) * | 1855-10-09 | Improvement in sewing-machines | ||
| US100742A (en) * | 1870-03-15 | Improvement in lawn-mowers | ||
| US50254A (en) * | 1865-10-03 | Improvement in portable scales | ||
| US77302A (en) * | 1868-04-28 | mat son | ||
| US13281A (en) * | 1855-07-17 | Churn | ||
| US111317A (en) * | 1871-01-31 | Improvement in culinary vessels | ||
| US61857A (en) * | 1867-02-05 | Improvement in top-drivers or spinners | ||
| US61858A (en) * | 1867-02-05 | Improved washing machine | ||
| US40007A (en) * | 1863-09-22 | Improvement in railroad-car brakes | ||
| US25937A (en) * | 1859-11-01 | ballou | ||
| US52328A (en) * | 1866-01-30 | Improved mode of attaching car-wheels to axles | ||
| US156027A (en) * | 1874-10-20 | Improvement in loom-shuttles | ||
| US61856A (en) * | 1867-02-05 | Enos s | ||
| US3923784A (en) | 1973-09-10 | 1975-12-02 | Hoffmann La Roche | Erythromycin a derivatives |
| YU43116B (en) | 1979-04-02 | 1989-04-30 | Pliva Pharm & Chem Works | Process for preparing 11-aza-4-o-cladinosyl-6-o-desosaminyl-15-ethyl-7,13,14-trihydroxy-3,5,7,9,12,14-hexamethyl-oxacyclopentadecane-2-one(11-aza-10-deox |
| US4331803A (en) | 1980-06-04 | 1982-05-25 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co., Ltd. | Novel erythromycin compounds |
| SI8110592A8 (en) | 1981-03-06 | 1996-06-30 | Pliva Pharm & Chem Works | Process for preparing of n-methyl-11-aza-10-deoxo-10-dihydroerythromycine a and derivatives thereof |
| US4474768A (en) | 1982-07-19 | 1984-10-02 | Pfizer Inc. | N-Methyl 11-aza-10-deoxo-10-dihydro-erytromycin A, intermediates therefor |
| JPS61103890A (en) | 1984-10-26 | 1986-05-22 | Taisho Pharmaceut Co Ltd | 6-0-methylerythromycin A derivative |
| JPS61229895A (en) | 1985-04-03 | 1986-10-14 | Nippon Zeon Co Ltd | Protected des-n-methylerythromycin derivative |
| GB8521402D0 (en) | 1985-08-28 | 1985-10-02 | Beecham Group Plc | Chemical compounds |
| US4672056A (en) | 1985-11-12 | 1987-06-09 | Abbott Laboratories | Erythromycin A derivatives and method of use |
| EP0283055B1 (en) | 1987-09-03 | 1990-08-29 | SOUR PLIVA farmaceutska, Kemijska prehrambena i kozmeticka industrija, n.sol.o. | 10-dihydro-10-deoxo-11-azaerythronolide-a-compounds, methods and intermediates for the manufacture thereof and their use in pharmaceuticals and in the manufacture thereof |
| US5141926A (en) * | 1990-04-18 | 1992-08-25 | Abbott Laboratories | Erythromycin derivatives |
| IL99995A (en) | 1990-11-21 | 1997-11-20 | Roussel Uclaf | Erythromycin derivatives, their preparation and pharmaceutical compositions containing them |
| US6060234A (en) | 1991-01-17 | 2000-05-09 | Abbott Laboratories | Polyketide derivatives and recombinant methods for making same |
| US5824513A (en) | 1991-01-17 | 1998-10-20 | Abbott Laboratories | Recombinant DNA method for producing erythromycin analogs |
| US5985844A (en) | 1992-03-26 | 1999-11-16 | Merck & Co., Inc. | Homoerythromycin A derivatives modified at the 4"-and 8A-positions |
| CA2064634C (en) | 1991-04-04 | 1998-08-04 | James V. Heck | 9-deoxo-8a-aza-8a-homoerythromycin a derivatives modified at the 4"- and8a-positions |
| US5523399A (en) | 1991-12-27 | 1996-06-04 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co., Ltd. | 5-O-desosaminylerythronolide derivatives |
| FR2691464B1 (en) | 1992-05-21 | 1995-06-02 | Roussel Uclaf | New derivatives of 1-oxa 6-azacyclopentadecane 13,15-dione, their preparation process and their use as medicaments. |
| US5414926A (en) | 1992-10-09 | 1995-05-16 | Sumitomo Wiring Systems, Ltd. | Terminal crimping apparatus |
| US5527780A (en) | 1992-11-05 | 1996-06-18 | Roussel Uclaf | Erythromycin derivatives |
| FR2697524B1 (en) | 1992-11-05 | 1994-12-23 | Roussel Uclaf | New erythromycin derivatives, their preparation process and their use as drugs. |
| US5332807A (en) | 1993-04-14 | 1994-07-26 | Merck & Co., Inc. | Process of producing 8A- and 9A-azalide antibiotics |
| FR2702480B1 (en) | 1993-03-09 | 1995-04-28 | Roussel Uclaf | New erythromycin derivatives, their preparation process and their use as drugs. |
| HRP931480B1 (en) * | 1993-12-08 | 1997-08-31 | Sour Pliva | 9a-N-(N'-CARBAMONYL) and 9a-N-(N'-THIOCARBAMONYL) DERIVATES OF 9-DEOXO-9a-HOMOERYTHROMYCIN A |
| US5441939A (en) * | 1994-03-04 | 1995-08-15 | Pfizer Inc. | 3"-desmethoxy derivatives of erythromycin and azithromycin |
| FR2718450B1 (en) | 1994-04-08 | 1997-01-10 | Roussel Uclaf | New erythromycin derivatives, their preparation process and their use as drugs. |
| FR2719587B1 (en) | 1994-05-03 | 1996-07-12 | Roussel Uclaf | New erythromycin derivatives, their preparation process and their use as drugs. |
| FR2727969B1 (en) | 1994-12-09 | 1997-01-17 | Roussel Uclaf | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| FR2732023B1 (en) | 1995-03-22 | 1997-04-30 | Roussel Uclaf | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| FR2732684B1 (en) | 1995-04-06 | 1997-04-30 | Roussel Uclaf | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| US6274715B1 (en) | 1995-11-08 | 2001-08-14 | Abbott Laboratories | Tricyclic erythromycin derivatives |
| US5747466A (en) | 1995-11-08 | 1998-05-05 | Abbott Laboratories | 3-deoxy-3-descladinose derivatives of erythromycins A and B |
| FR2742757B1 (en) | 1995-12-22 | 1998-01-30 | Roussel Uclaf | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| FR2745290B1 (en) | 1996-02-28 | 1998-04-03 | Roussel Uclaf | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| US6077943A (en) * | 1996-03-01 | 2000-06-20 | Takeda Chemical Industries, Ltd. | Method of producing erythromycin derivative |
| US5719272A (en) | 1996-04-02 | 1998-02-17 | Abbott Laboratories | 2'-protected 3'-dimethylamine, 9-etheroxime erythromycin A derivatives |
| BR9708929A (en) * | 1996-05-07 | 1999-08-03 | Abbott Lab | Compound pharmaceutical composition and processes for controlling bacterial infection in a mammal and for preparing macrolide compounds |
| WO1997042204A1 (en) * | 1996-05-07 | 1997-11-13 | Abbott Laboratories | 6-o-substituted erythromycins and method for making them |
| US5750510A (en) * | 1997-04-04 | 1998-05-12 | Abbott Laboratories | 3-descladinose-2,3-anhydroerythromycin derivatives |
| FR2748746B1 (en) | 1996-05-14 | 1998-08-14 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NEW PROCESS FOR ISOMERIZATION OF RADICAL METHYL IN 10 FROM ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES |
| DE19626036A1 (en) | 1996-06-28 | 1998-01-02 | Whitaker Corp | Optical connector |
| US6271255B1 (en) | 1996-07-05 | 2001-08-07 | Biotica Technology Limited | Erythromycins and process for their preparation |
| JP4173551B2 (en) | 1996-07-05 | 2008-10-29 | バイオティカ テクノロジー リミティド | Novel erythromycin and method for producing the same |
| FR2751656B1 (en) | 1996-07-24 | 1998-10-16 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| UA51730C2 (en) * | 1996-09-04 | 2002-12-16 | Ебботт Лабораторіз | 6-0-substituted ketolides having antibacterial activity |
| US5804565A (en) | 1996-09-24 | 1998-09-08 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co., Ltd. | Erythromycin A derivatives |
| FR2754821B1 (en) | 1996-10-23 | 2003-04-04 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| EP0945459A4 (en) | 1996-11-27 | 2000-02-09 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co Ltd | ERYTHROMICIN A DERIVATIVES |
| FR2757168B1 (en) | 1996-12-12 | 1999-06-11 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| FR2760017B1 (en) | 1997-02-27 | 1999-04-30 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| AU4472897A (en) | 1997-03-10 | 1998-09-29 | Taisho Pharmaceutical Co., Ltd. | Erythromycin a derivatives |
| WO1998051696A1 (en) | 1997-05-09 | 1998-11-19 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Erythromycin derivatives |
| HN1998000086A (en) | 1997-06-11 | 1999-03-08 | Pfizer Prod Inc | DERIVATIVES OF 9 - DESOFO - 9 AZA - 9A - HOMOERITROMICINA A - C - 4 SUBSTITUTED. |
| US6407074B1 (en) | 1997-06-11 | 2002-06-18 | Pfizer Inc | C-4″-substituted macrolide derivatives |
| IL132767A0 (en) | 1997-06-11 | 2001-03-19 | Pfizer Prod Inc | 9-Oxime erythromycin derivatives |
| US20020025937A1 (en) | 2000-03-20 | 2002-02-28 | Yong-Jin Wu | 9-oxime erythromycin derivatives |
| EP0895999A1 (en) | 1997-08-06 | 1999-02-10 | Pfizer Products Inc. | C-4" substituted macrolide antibiotics |
| US5868549A (en) * | 1997-08-29 | 1999-02-09 | Hk Systems, Inc. | Palletizer with air assisted slide plate assembly and indexing pallet hoist |
| PA8461401A1 (en) | 1997-10-29 | 2000-05-24 | Pfizer Prod Inc | TRICYCLIC ERYTHROMYCINE DERIVATIVES |
| HN1998000159A (en) | 1997-10-29 | 1999-02-09 | Monsanto Co | DERIVATIVES OF 9- AMINO - 3 CETO ERITROMICINA |
| CN1284961A (en) | 1997-12-11 | 2001-02-21 | 北陆制药株式会社 | Erythromycin derivatives |
| AP9801420A0 (en) | 1998-01-02 | 1998-12-31 | Pfizer Prod Inc | Novel macrolides. |
| AP1060A (en) * | 1998-01-02 | 2002-04-23 | Pfizer Prod Inc | Novel erythromycin derivatives. |
| ATE275151T1 (en) * | 1998-03-03 | 2004-09-15 | Pfizer Prod Inc | 3,6-KETAL MACROLIDA ANTIBIOTIC |
| FR2777282B1 (en) | 1998-04-08 | 2001-04-20 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NEW DERIVATIVES OF 2-FLUORO 3-DE ((2,6-DIDEOXY 3-C-METHYL 3-0-METHYL-ALPHA-L-RIBOHEXOPYRANOSYL) OXYL) 6-O-METHYL 3-OXO ERYTHROMYCIN, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION TO THE SYNTHESIS OF ACTIVE INGREDIENTS OF MEDICINES |
| AU3439899A (en) | 1998-06-03 | 1999-12-20 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Tricyclic 3-keto derivatives of 6-o-methylerythromycin |
| US6043227A (en) | 1998-08-19 | 2000-03-28 | Pfizer Inc. | C11 carbamates of macrolide antibacterials |
| ATE298761T1 (en) | 1998-09-22 | 2005-07-15 | Pfizer Prod Inc | CARBAMAT AND CARBAZATE KETOLID ANTIBIOTICS |
| US6100240A (en) | 1998-10-09 | 2000-08-08 | Pfizer Inc | Macrolide derivatives |
| FR2785612A1 (en) | 1998-11-10 | 2000-05-12 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL DERIVATIVES OF ERYTHROMYCIN, PROCESS FOR PREPARING THEM AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| KR20010083944A (en) | 1998-11-03 | 2001-09-03 | 실버스타인 아써 에이. | Novel macrolide antibiotics |
| UA70972C2 (en) | 1998-11-20 | 2004-11-15 | Пфайзер Продактс Інк. | 13-membered azalides and use thereof as antibiotics |
| FR2786188B1 (en) | 1998-11-24 | 2002-10-31 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| WO2000044761A2 (en) | 1999-01-27 | 2000-08-03 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Ketolide antibiotics |
| FR2789392B1 (en) | 1999-02-04 | 2001-10-05 | Hoechst Marion Roussel Inc | NOVEL ERYTHROMYCIN DERIVATIVES, THEIR PREPARATION PROCESS AND THEIR APPLICATION AS MEDICAMENTS |
| MXPA01010521A (en) | 1999-04-16 | 2003-08-19 | Johnson & Johnson | Ketolide antibacterials. |
| US20020061857A1 (en) | 1999-04-23 | 2002-05-23 | Yong-Jin Wu | 9-amino-3-oxo erythromycin derivatives |
| US20020077302A1 (en) | 1999-04-23 | 2002-06-20 | Yong-Jin Wu | Tricyclic erythromycin derivatives |
| US6355620B1 (en) | 1999-05-14 | 2002-03-12 | Abbott Laboratories | C-2 modified erythromycin derivatives |
| HK1045523A1 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2002-11-29 | 辉瑞产品公司 | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
| EP1114826A3 (en) | 1999-12-29 | 2001-10-31 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Novel antibacterial and prokinetic macrolides |
| EP1122261A3 (en) | 2000-01-31 | 2001-09-26 | Pfizer Products Inc. | 13 and 14-membered antibacterial macrolides |
| EP1146051A3 (en) | 2000-04-10 | 2001-10-31 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Erythromycin A derivatives |
| US20020061856A1 (en) | 2000-04-24 | 2002-05-23 | Yong-Jin Wu | Novel tricyclic erythromycin derivatives |
| PT1167376E (en) | 2000-06-30 | 2004-09-30 | Pfizer Prod Inc | MACROLIDOS ANTIBIOTICS |
| US20020115621A1 (en) | 2000-08-07 | 2002-08-22 | Wei-Gu Su | Macrolide antibiotics |
| AU2002230386A1 (en) | 2000-09-25 | 2002-04-29 | Kosan Biosciences, Inc. | Sixteen-membered macrolide compounds |
-
2000
- 2000-04-25 HK HK02107035.0A patent/HK1045523A1/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 EE EEP200100613A patent/EE200100613A/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 TR TR2001/03395T patent/TR200103395T2/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 EA EA200100983A patent/EA200100983A1/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 IL IL14573900A patent/IL145739A0/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 EP EP00917230A patent/EP1180110A1/en not_active Withdrawn
- 2000-04-25 CA CA002373117A patent/CA2373117C/en not_active Expired - Fee Related
- 2000-04-25 JP JP2000619813A patent/JP2003500414A/en active Pending
- 2000-04-25 CZ CZ20013733A patent/CZ20013733A3/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 OA OA1200100303A patent/OA11945A/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 HU HU0201516A patent/HUP0201516A3/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 HR HR20010866A patent/HRP20010866A2/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2000-04-25 CN CN00807992A patent/CN1351608A/en active Pending
- 2000-04-25 KR KR1020017015049A patent/KR20020016799A/en not_active Ceased
- 2000-04-25 AP APAP/P/2001/002302A patent/AP2001002302A0/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 AU AU38321/00A patent/AU3832100A/en not_active Abandoned
- 2000-04-25 PL PL00352720A patent/PL352720A1/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2000-04-25 SK SK1516-2001A patent/SK15162001A3/en unknown
- 2000-04-25 WO PCT/IB2000/000502 patent/WO2000071557A1/en not_active Ceased
- 2000-04-25 BR BR0010938-0A patent/BR0010938A/en not_active IP Right Cessation
- 2000-05-05 PA PA20008495101A patent/PA8495101A1/en unknown
- 2000-05-22 AR ARP000102485A patent/AR020032A1/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2000-05-23 TN TNTNSN00108A patent/TNSN00108A1/en unknown
- 2000-05-23 DZ DZ000088A patent/DZ3045A1/en active
- 2000-05-23 PE PE2000000491A patent/PE20010171A1/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2000-05-24 UY UY26161A patent/UY26161A1/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2000-05-24 MA MA25990A patent/MA26740A1/en unknown
- 2000-05-24 US US09/577,901 patent/US20030100518A1/en not_active Abandoned
-
2001
- 2001-10-23 NO NO20015172A patent/NO20015172L/en not_active Application Discontinuation
- 2001-10-26 IS IS6128A patent/IS6128A/en unknown
- 2001-11-21 BG BG106127A patent/BG106127A/en unknown
- 2001-11-21 ZA ZA200109595A patent/ZA200109595B/en unknown
-
2003
- 2003-05-19 US US10/441,347 patent/US6777543B2/en not_active Expired - Fee Related
Cited By (11)
| Publication number | Priority date | Publication date | Assignee | Title |
|---|---|---|---|---|
| US6825171B2 (en) | 1998-01-02 | 2004-11-30 | Pfizer, Inc. | Erythromycin derivatives |
| US7015203B2 (en) | 1998-01-02 | 2006-03-21 | Pfizer Inc. | Macrolides |
| US6835716B2 (en) | 1998-11-03 | 2004-12-28 | Pfizer, Inc. | Macrolide antibiotics |
| US20050004047A1 (en) * | 1998-11-03 | 2005-01-06 | Pfizer Inc | Novel macrolide antibiotics |
| US7071170B2 (en) | 1998-11-03 | 2006-07-04 | Pfizer Inc. | Macrolide antibiotics |
| US6833444B2 (en) | 1999-01-27 | 2004-12-21 | Pfizer, Inc. | Ketolide antibiotics |
| US6777543B2 (en) | 1999-05-24 | 2004-08-17 | Pfizer, Inc. | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives |
| US20060135447A1 (en) * | 2004-12-21 | 2006-06-22 | Chupak Louis S | Macrolides |
| WO2006067589A1 (en) | 2004-12-21 | 2006-06-29 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Macrolides |
| US7462600B2 (en) | 2004-12-21 | 2008-12-09 | Pfizer Inc | Macrolides |
| EP2233493A1 (en) | 2004-12-21 | 2010-09-29 | Pfizer Products Inc. | Macrolides |
Also Published As
Similar Documents
| Publication | Publication Date | Title |
|---|---|---|
| US6777543B2 (en) | 13-methyl erythromycin derivatives | |
| US6472371B1 (en) | Macrolides | |
| US6825171B2 (en) | Erythromycin derivatives | |
| US6437151B2 (en) | Erythromycins and process for their preparation | |
| US6270768B1 (en) | Azalides and methods of making same | |
| EP0909327B1 (en) | Erythromycins and process for their preparation | |
| MXPA01010817A (en) | 13-methyl-erythromycin derivatives | |
| MXPA00006604A (en) | Novel macrolides | |
| MXPA00001110A (en) | Novel azalides and methods of making same |
Legal Events
| Date | Code | Title | Description |
|---|---|---|---|
| AS | Assignment |
Owner name: PFIZER PRODUCTS INC., CONNECTICUT Free format text: ASSIGNMENT OF ASSIGNORS INTEREST;ASSIGNORS:SU, WEI-GUO;KANEKO, TAKUSHI;MCARTHUR, HAMISH ALASTAIR IRVINE;REEL/FRAME:011592/0284;SIGNING DATES FROM 20010112 TO 20010119 Owner name: PFIZER INC., NEW YORK Free format text: ASSIGNMENT OF ASSIGNORS INTEREST;ASSIGNORS:SU, WEI-GUO;KANEKO, TAKUSHI;MCARTHUR, HAMISH ALASTAIR IRVINE;REEL/FRAME:011592/0284;SIGNING DATES FROM 20010112 TO 20010119 |
|
| AS | Assignment |
Owner name: PFIZER, INC., NEW YORK Free format text: ASSIGNMENT OF ASSIGNORS INTEREST;ASSIGNOR:WU, YONG-JIN;REEL/FRAME:013229/0412 Effective date: 20001231 Owner name: PFIZER PRODUCTS, INC., CONNECTICUT Free format text: ASSIGNMENT OF ASSIGNORS INTEREST;ASSIGNOR:WU, YONG-JIN;REEL/FRAME:013229/0412 Effective date: 20001231 |
|
| STCB | Information on status: application discontinuation |
Free format text: ABANDONED -- FAILURE TO RESPOND TO AN OFFICE ACTION |